Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n father_n ghost_n trinity_n 3,600 5 9.6701 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62548 A treatise of religion and governmemt [sic] with reflexions vpon the cause and cure of Englands late distempers and present dangersĀ· The argument vvhether Protestancy is less dangerous to the soul, or more advantagious to the state, then the Roman Catholick religion? The conclusion that piety and policy are mistaken in promoting Protestancy, and persecuting Popery by penal and sanguinary statuts. Wilson, John, M.A. 1670 (1670) Wing T118; ESTC R223760 471,564 687

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

we_o as_o sacred_a thus_o much_o have_v i_o think_v good_a to_o remember_v that_o volanus_fw-la may_v receive_v answer_n from_o himself_o when_o he_o so_o often_o enforce_v against_o we_o the_o authority_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o true_o socinus_n do_v defend_v his_o error_n concern_v christ_n with_o as_o many_o and_o as_o clear_a text_n of_o scripture_n not_o understand_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o any_o point_n of_o protestancy_n be_v maintain_v by_o other_o protestant_n the_o puritan_n now_o call_v presbiterian_o use_v the_o same_o way_n of_o argue_v against_o the_o prelatiks_n and_o with_o no_o less_o success_n then_o socinus_fw-la against_o volanus_fw-la as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o cartwright_n in_o his_o second_o reply_n against_o episcopacy_n p._n 1._o pag._n 484._o and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v say_v he_o how_o just_o we_o call_v this_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n the_o first_o general_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o canon_n touch_v the_o metropolitan_a which_o the_o prelatiks_n urge_v in_o favour_n of_o episcopacy_n unto_o the_o touch_fw-mi stone_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v it_o be_v consider_v etc._n etc._n in_o the_o same_o council_n appear_v that_o to_o those_o choose_v of_o the_o ministry_n unmarried_a it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o take_v any_o wife_n afterward_o etc._n etc._n paphnutius_fw-la show_v that_o not_o only_o this_o be_v before_o that_o council_n but_o be_v a_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o both_o himself_a and_o the_o whole_a council_n rest_v etc._n etc._n if_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o authorise_v this_o neither_o can_v ancient_a custom_n authorise_v the_o other_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n will_v fain_o hold_v episcopacy_n by_o virtue_n of_o tradition_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o yet_o will_v have_v priest_n marry_v contrary_a to_o the_o same_o tradition_n and_o authority_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o the_o same_o mr._n cartwright_n well_o observe_v ibid._n pag._n 582._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v needs_o have_v the_o nicen_n council_n be_v of_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o maintain_v arch-bishop_n but_o not_o the_o pope_n whereas_o the_o on_o be_v as_o clear_o express_v as_o the_o other_o and_o no_o less_o necessary_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n if_o say_v he_o a_o archbishop_n be_v necessary_a for_o call_v a_o provincial_a council_n when_o the_o bishop_n be_v divide_v it_o be_v necessary_a there_o be_v also_o a_o pope_n which_o may_v call_v a_o general_a council_n when_o division_n be_v among_o the_o arch-bishop_n for_o when_o the_o church_n of_o one_o province_n be_v divide_v from_o other_o as_o you_o ask_v i_o so_o i_o ask_v you_o who_o shall_v assemble_v they_o together_o who_o shall_v admonish_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n when_o they_o be_v assemble_v if_o you_o can_v find_v a_o way_n how_o this_o may_v be_v do_v without_o a_o pope_n the_o way_n be_v also_o find_v whereby_o the_o church_n be_v disburden_v of_o the_o archbishop_n when_o prelaticks_n dispute_v with_o presbiterian_o about_o episcopacy_n and_o ceremony_n etc._n etc._n they_o extol_v the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n but_o when_o they_o dispute_v with_o roman_a catholic_n about_o the_o unmarried_a life_n of_o priest_n the_o pop_n supremacy_n or_o any_o other_o point_n of_o popery_n than_o they_o extenuate_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o counsel_n and_o will_v admit_v of_o no_o other_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o scripture_n so_o that_o a_o prelatick_fw-mi protestant_n against_o presbiterian_o be_v a_o papist_n and_o against_o papist_n be_v a_o presbiterian_a what_o he_o be_v or_o will_v be_v if_o both_o do_v argue_v against_o he_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v not_o well_o know_v to_o i_o nor_o as_o i_o suppose_v to_o him-self_n but_o if_o he_o admit_v of_o the_o two_o main_a pillar_n whereby_o protestancy_n be_v support_v which_o be_v the_o pretend_a fall_n and_o fallibility_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o arbitrary_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n he_o may_v be_v any_o thing_n he_o please_v and_o to_o speak_v more_o modest_o of_o he_o then_o modestinus_n of_o calvinist_n he_o be_v in_o a_o fair_a way_n to_o be_v a_o baptise_a jew_n mahometan_n or_o arian_n and_o can_v not_o miss_v that_o way_n if_o he_o will_v be_v guide_v by_o the_o protestant_a principle_n and_o follow_v the_o tract_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o reformation_n both_o luther_n sapit_fw-la and_o calvin_n dislike_v the_o word_n trinity_n on_o say_v it_o sound_v could_o the_o other_o barbarous_o and_o luther_n by_o omit_v in_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o text_n of_o scripture_n therebe_a three_o which_o give_v witness_v in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o show_v how_o little_a incline_v he_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o sacred_a mystery_n and_o by_o say_v that_o his_o soul_n hate_v homusion_n and_o that_o the_o arian_n do_v very_o well_o thing_n to_o reject_v that_o new_a and_o profane_a word_n from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o declare_v how_o his_o protestant_a rule_n and_o reformation_n do_v direct_a man_n to_o heresy_n and_o to_o all_o kind_n of_o infidelity_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o refine_a heresy_n then_o scripture_n misinterpret_v and_o mis-applyed_n and_o scripture_n may_v be_v as_o easy_o misinterpret_v and_o miss_v apply_v against_o the_o trinity_n or_o the_o second_o person_n be_v equality_n and_o consubstantiality_n as_o apply_v to_o any_o on_o point_n of_o protestancy_n the_o anti-trinitarians_a of_o poland_n transilvania_n and_o hungary_n think_v themselves_o as_o good_a calvinist_n as_o any_o french_a hugonot_n and_o better_a protestant_n then_o english_a prelaticks_n or_o german_a lutheran_n because_o they_o not_o only_o agree_v with_o all_o reform_a church_n in_o the_o fundamental_n of_o protestancy_n that_o be_v in_o suppose_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o reform_v it_o by_o private_a authority_n and_o their_o own_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n but_o go_v a_o step_n further_o in_o the_o reformation_n by_o deny_v the_o trinity_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n it_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o choice_n and_o discretion_n of_o every_o particular_a church_n and_o person_n what_o article_n of_o popery_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v reject_v by_o their_o private_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o man_n not_o tie_v to_o any_o rule_n but_o to_o their_o own_o fancy_n of_o scripture_n to_o agree_v in_o the_o point_n of_o popery_n what_o to_o reject_v or_o retain_v they_o who_o confine_v with_o the_o turk_n dominion_n venture_v to_o deny_v the_o trinity_n and_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o laugh_v at_o their_o brethren_n argument_n against_o their_o impiety_n as_o deduce_v only_o from_o tradition_n counsel_n and_o father_n and_o call_v they_o old_a roman_a rag_n long_o since_o tear_v in_o piece_n by_o the_o protestant_n them-selve_n in_o other_o point_n of_o protestancy_n etc._n etc._n he_o sunt_fw-la vetusti_fw-la panni_fw-la quos_fw-la vos_fw-la laceratis_fw-la in_o aliis_fw-la fidei_fw-la articulis_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o lacerata_fw-la jamdudum_fw-la calceamenta_fw-la nullus_fw-la &_o nemo_n h._n 9_o they_o be_v say_v they_o patch_v show_v wear_v out_o long_o ago_o but_o here_o in_o england_n france_n etc._n etc._n where_o no_o neighbour_a nation_n deny_v the_o trinity_n or_o incarnation_n protestant_n make_v those_o mystery_n fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o transilvania_n and_o hungary_n the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n be_v not_o keep_v in_o such_o awe_n as_o here_o they_o make_v bold_a there_o to_o apply_v scripture_n against_o any_o mystery_n of_o christianity_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o admire_v that_o they_o as_o mr._n hooker_n tell_v we_o eccles._n pol●●_n l._n 4._o pag._n 183._o of_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o poland_n scindere_fw-la think_v the_o very_a belief_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o antichristian_a corruption_n and_o that_o the_o pop_n triple_a crown_n be_v a_o sensible_a mark_n whereby_o the_o world_n may_v know_v he_o to_o be_v that_o mystical_a beast_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o revelation_n in_o no_o respect_n so_o much_o as_o in_o his_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n nor_o when_o they_o say_v that_o st._n athanasius_n his_o symbol_n be_v the_o symbol_n of_o satan_n and_o brag_v that_o luther_n do_v scarce_o untile_v the_o babylonian_a jower_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o they_o do_v utter_o demolish_v it_o and_o dig_v up_o its_o very_a foundation_n by_o which_o word_n they_o give_v clear_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n england_n denmark_n etc._n etc._n be_v but_o superficial_a protestant_n
every_o day_n rather_o loose_v then_o gain_v ground_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o these_o nation_n can_v not_o be_v wrought_v upon_o either_o by_o fair_a or_o foul_a mean_n to_o think_v well_o of_o that_o religion_n or_o to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o prelatic_a ministry_n the_o reason_n be_v obvious_a to_o such_o as_o be_v not_o obstinate_a 1._o the_o incredibility_n of_o their_o pretend_v spiritual_a character_n and_o jurisdiction_n 2._o the_o incoherency_n of_o their_o doctrine_n with_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n their_o episcopal_a character_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v as_o incredible_a as_o king_n henry_n 8._o spiritual_a supremacy_n queen_n elizabeth_n legitimacy_n and_o the_o validity_n and_o solemnity_n of_o their_o first_o bishop_n consecration_n they_o have_v indeed_o of_o late_o endeavour_v to_o excuse_v the_o latness_n of_o their_o masonian_n register_n discovery_n england_n and_o to_o clear_v they_o from_o the_o suspicion_n of_o forgery_n but_o so_o faint_o and_o fraudulent_o that_o their_o vindication_n though_o pen_v and_o publish_v by_o on_o of_o the_o able_a prelate_n of_o their_o church_n have_v furnish_v their_o adversary_n with_o so_o many_o new_a demonstration_n against_o their_o character_n that_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o reply_n the_o protestant_a bishop_n have_v resolve_v upon_o a_o submission_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o argument_n and_o change_v the_o controvert_v and_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n as_o they_o endeavour_v of_o late_a to_o vindicat_fw-la their_o register_n from_o forgery_n so_o they_o long_o since_o explain_v the_o queen_n supremacy_n but_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o know_a law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o clear_a word_n of_o their_o oath_n both_o of_o supremacy_n and_o episcopal_a homage_n that_o neither_o can_v bear_v their_o fond_a interpretation_n and_o if_o they_o can_v the_o bishop_n will_v have_v nothing_o to_o show_v for_o their_o pretend_a spiritual_a function_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o can_v deduce_v either_o of_o they_o by_o succession_n from_o any_o apostolic_a church_n or_o orthodox_n council_n and_o therefore_o must_v content_v them-selve_n with_o what_o they_o can_v buy_v from_o a_o lay_v sovereign_a and_o temporal_a statute_n or_o acknowledge_v the_o truth_n and_o confess_v ingenious_o they_o be_v but_o lay-man_n and_o have_v no_o lawful_a authority_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o spiritual_a function_n and_o jurisdiction_n see_v they_o have_v no_o catholic_n predecessor_n and_o degenerate_v from_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o claim_v with_o presbiterian_o and_o fanatic_n the_o extravagancy_n of_o a_o private_a spirit_n and_o extraordinary_a vocation_n the_o incoherency_n also_o of_o the_o prelatic_a doctrine_n make_v these_o nation_n averse_a from_o the_o prelatic_a church_n and_o clergy_n ●n_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n they_o declare_v with_o luther_n and_o the_o first_o reformer_n that_o no_o visible_a sign_n or_o ceremony_n and_o by_o consequence_n no_o such_o thing_n as_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n or_o be_v the_o necessary_a matter_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o bishop_n ordination_n and_o yet_o now_o of_o late_a that_o visible_a sign_n and_o ceremony_n be_v hold_v by_o them-selve_n to_o be_v so_o essential_a that_o without_o the_o same_o no_o character_n of_o priesthood_n or_o episcopacy_n be_v think_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o party_n ordain_v and_o therefore_o they_o reordain_v such_o presbiterian_a minister_n as_o do_v neglect_v or_o contemn_v imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n 2._o they_o maintain_v in_o the_o same_o 39_o article_n that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v fall_v into_o damnable_a error_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o only_o such_o a_o fall_n can_v justify_v the_o protestant_n separation_n or_o excuse_v they_o from_o sin_n and_o schism_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o be_v press_v with_o a_o consequence_n that_o necessary_o follow_v out_o of_o this_o supposition_n to_o wit_n that_o if_o the_o roman_a and_o visible_a church_n have_v so_o err_v protestant_n can_v have_v no_o christian_a faith_n nor_o certainty_n of_o the_o scriptur_n being_n god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n etc._n etc._n which_o they_o receive_v and_o retain_v upon_o the_o sole_a testimony_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v in_o their_o own_o 39_o article_n declare_v the_o greeck_n church_n heretical_a for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v testimony_n even_o in_o other_o article_n be_v invalid_a and_o its_o concurrence_n in_o those_o other_o article_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v unsignificant_a and_o yet_o they_o again_o contradict_v them-selve_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v infalible_a in_o all_o article_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n 3._o the_o same_o inconstancy_n and_o incoherency_n they_o show_v in_o deny_v that_o doctrinal_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o tradition_n itself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o divine_a belief_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o be_v demand_v to_o show_v a_o proof_n by_o clear_a scripture_n of_o the_o distinction_n between_o single_a priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n u.g._n than_o they_o maintain_v that_o traditional_a doctrine_n be_v god_n word_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o roman_a visisible_a church_n a_o sufficient_a evidence_n thereof_o their_o waver_a and_o inconsequent_a way_n of_o proceed_v do_v manifest_a to_o the_o world_n that_o as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o particular_n of_o christian_a religion_n nay_o even_o in_o declare_v which_o be_v necessary_a or_o not_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n the_o prelatic_a clergy_n have_v a_o great_a regard_n to_o their_o own_o conveniency_n then_o to_o god_n veracity_n and_o to_o the_o revenue_n of_o ●he_n church_n then_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n otherwise_o why_o shall_v they_o take_v our_o roman_a catholic_n word_n for_o episcopacy_n and_o not_o for_o the_o pop_n supremacy_n for_o the_o letter_n but_o not_o for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o not_o rebaptise_v or_o for_o receive_v relapse_v penitent_n more_o than_o for_o purgatory_n or_o transubstantiation_n or_o for_o keep_v sunday_n and_o not_o pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n see_v all_o these_o doctrine_n be_v equa_o propose_v to_o they_o as_o catholic_n truth_n by_o the_o sole_a credible_a testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o our_o one_o and_o the_o same_o roman_n catholic_n church_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o greeck_n and_o all_o other_o church_n as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v render_v invalid_a by_o the_o heretic_n wherwhith_fw-mi protestant_n confess_v they_o be_v infect_v some_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o if_o the_o more_o modern_a prelaticks_n have_v not_o forsake_v their_o old_a way_n of_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n or_o by_o some_o such_o public_a testimony_n and_o superficial_a ceremony_n of_o their_o congregation_n without_o trouble_v them-selve_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o inward_a character_n give_v by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n a_o broad_a and_o to_o the_o 23._o and_o 25._o of_o their_o own_o 39_o article_n at_o home_n they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o hard_o put_v to_o it_o by_o their_o presbiterian_a brethren_n argument_n who_o stick_v to_o the_o tenet_n and_o rule_n of_o pure_a and_o primitive_a protestancy_n detest_a those_o formality_n and_o dregs_o of_o popery_n which_o prelaticks_n of_o late_o have_v so_o much_o affect_v in_o ordain_v of_o minister_n mr._n hooker_n dr._n covel_n and_o some_o other_o prelaticks_n in_o their_o write_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n begin_v to_o inculcat_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o make_v ordination_n a_o spiritual_a character_n imprint_v in_o the_o soul_n by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n and_o not_o a_o bare_a formality_n of_o the_o secular_a magistrat_n election_n by_o some_o outward_a ceremony_n or_o letter_n patent_n as_o all_o english_a protestant_n have_v believe_v and_o practise_v until_o hooker_n and_o covel_n broach_v this_o among_o their_o other_o popish_a novelty_n and_o therefore_o be_v public_o blame_v and_o complain_v of_o by_o prelatic_a writer_n and_o particular_o by_o dr._n willet_n in_o his_o worck_n upon_o the_o 112._o psalm_n print_a 1603._o and_o dedicate_v to_o the_o queen_n majesty_n page_n 91._o he_o say_v from_o this_o fountain_n have_v spring_v forth_o these_o and_o such_o other_o whirlpoint_v and_o bubble_n of_o new_a doctrine_n and_o among_o other_o he_o set_v down_o as_o a_o novelty_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o that_o there_o be_v in_o ordination_n give_v a_o indelible_a character_n and_o then_o add_v thus_o have_v some_o be_v bold_a to_o teach_v and_o write_v who_o as_o some_o schismatic_n the_o puritan_n have_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n one_o
due_a to_o saint_n bishop_n priests_z etc._n etc._n 〈…〉_z of_o that_o religious_a and_o supernatural_a excellency_n or_o 〈◊〉_d which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o and_o to_o saint_n we_o pray_v 〈◊〉_d god_n servant_n not_o as_o to_o god_n as_o mr._n usher_n will_v 〈◊〉_d protestant's_n we_o be_v calumniate_v by_o he_o as_o st._n hierom_n st._n austin_n and_o all_o catholic_n be_v by_o vigilantius_n and_o faustus_n manichean_a heretic_n st._n austin_n his_o word_n be_v 21._o the_o heretic_n faustus_n do_v calumniat_fw-la u_fw-mi because_o we_o honour_v the_o 〈◊〉_d or_o relic_n of_o martyr_n affirm_v that_o we_o have_v they_o for_o our_o idol_n the_o christian_a people_n do_v celebrat_n with_o religious_a 〈◊〉_d the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n thereby_o to_o stir_v up_o themselves_o to_o their_o imitation_n and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v assist_v with_o their_o prayer_n and_o make_v partaker_n of_o their_o merit_n but_o with_o the_o worship_n term_v in_o greek_a latria_fw-la and_o which_o the_o latin_a language_n can_v not_o express_v in_o one_o word_n 10_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a subjection_n and_o servitude_n due_a proper_o to_o the_o deity_n only_o we_o do_v not_o honour_v any_o but_o god_n alone_o etc._n etc._n coilyridians_n who_o hold_v our_o lady_n for_o a_o deity_n 7_o adore_v her_o 〈◊〉_d latria_fw-la and_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o she_o and_o yet_o he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d how_o st._n epiphanius_n in_o that_o very_a disputation_n inveigh_v 〈◊〉_d against_o such_o as_o do_v not_o honour_v our_o lady_n with_o due_a 〈…〉_z but_o let_v our_o lord_n be_v adore_v say_v he_o 〈…〉_z none_o adore_v she_o as_o god_n for_o though_o she_o be_v 〈…〉_z and_o most_o worthy_a of_o honour_n yet_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v 〈…〉_z wit_n with_o latria_fw-la and_o the_o same_o saint_n condemn_v as_o 〈◊〉_d those_o who_o do_v not_o give_v due_a honour_n to_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d who_o give_v she_o that_o of_o latria_fw-la for_o as_o these_o say_v he_o 〈…〉_z imagination_n of_o mary_n do_v sow_v pernicious_a 〈…〉_z in_o man_n mind_n 2._o so_o these_o other_o incline_v too_o much_o to_o the_o 〈…〉_z to_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n so_o that_o we_o see_v 〈…〉_z of_o latria_n and_o dulia_n be_v no_o idle_a invention_n of_o the_o 〈…〉_z necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n mr._n vhser_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_n treat_v of_o this_o controversy_n proceed_v with_o the_o same_o fraud_n he_o use_v in_o that_o of_o purgatory_n find_v that_o the_o ancient_a 〈◊〉_d pray_v to_o saint_n and_o that_o god_n wrought_v many_o mira●●●_n at_o their_o shrine_n and_o relic_n he_o endeavour_v to_o change_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o question_n and_o place_v the_o whole_a controversy_n in_o point_n 〈◊〉_d make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o we_o roman_a 〈◊〉_d now_o a_o day_n do_v not_o believe_v as_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o soul_n of_o martyr_n be_v present_a at_o their_o shrine_n 〈◊〉_d when_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v and_o other_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d the_o manner_n of_o their_o intercession_n and_o knowledge_n of_o our_o 〈◊〉_d and_o prayer_n so_o that_o say_v mr._n ʋsher_n pag._n 405._o to_o 〈◊〉_d good_a the_o popish_a manner_n of_o pray_v unto_o saint_n that_o 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o first_o be_v but_o probable_a and_o problematical_a to_o wit_n 〈◊〉_d say_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n scotus_n biel_n and_o other_o school_n divine_v must_v now_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la this_o calumny_n and_o fraud_n be_v clear_o confute_v by_o the_o word_n concede_fw-la nobis_fw-la domine_fw-la quaesumus_fw-la veniam_fw-la delictorum_fw-la &_o 〈…〉_z sanctis_fw-la quorum_fw-la hodie_fw-la solemnia_fw-la celebramus_fw-la talem_fw-la nobis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d denotionem_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la eorum_fw-la pervenire_fw-la mer●amur_fw-la societatem_fw-la 〈…〉_z ●orum_fw-la merita_fw-la quos_fw-la propria_fw-la impediunt_fw-la scelera_fw-la excuset_fw-la 〈◊〉_d accusat_fw-la quos_fw-la actio_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la ijs_fw-la tribuisti_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la palmam_fw-la 〈…〉_z nobis_fw-la veniam_fw-la non_fw-la deneges_fw-la peccati_fw-la grant_v we_o o_o lord_n we_o 〈…〉_z remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d solemnity_n we_o celebrat_fw-mi bestow_v upon_o we_o such_o devotion_n that_o we_o 〈◊〉_d serve_v to_o attain_v unto_o their_o fellowship_n and_o immediate_o follow_v let_v their_o merit_n help_v we_o that_o be_v hinder_v by_o our_o own_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d their_o intercession_n excuse_v we_o who_o be_v accuse_v by_o our_o own_o 〈◊〉_d and_o thou_o o_o lord_n who_o have_v bestow_v upon_o they_o the_o palm_n 〈◊〉_d heavenly_a triumph_n deny_v not_o unto_o we_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n 〈…〉_z pag._n 408._o quite_o omit_v the_o first_o part_n of_o 〈…〉_z translate_v the_o late_a part_n as_o if_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o 〈◊〉_d than_o a_o supplication_n thus_o can_v their_o merit_n help_v we_o 〈◊〉_d own_o sin_n hinder_v can_v their_o intercession_n excuse_v we_o peccati_fw-la who_o 〈◊〉_d do_v accuse_v themselves_o but_o thou_o who_o have_v bestow_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d palm_n of_o thy_o heavenly_a triumph_n deny_v not_o unto_o we_o the_o 〈…〉_z sin_n you_o see_v how_o he_o add_v interrogation_n and_o make_v 〈◊〉_d on_o his_o own_o head_n and_o not_o only_o translate_v the_o latin_a 〈…〉_z fraudulent_o but_o change_v the_o whole_a sense_n and_o 〈◊〉_d into_o the_o text_n at_o instead_o of_o &_o and_o tu_fw-la which_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d latin_a and_o make_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d as_o also_o that_o of_o the_o benedictin_a monk_n heretic_n as_o 〈◊〉_d of_o that_o which_o no_o roman_a catholic_n ever_o call_v in_o 〈◊〉_d what_o credit_n think_v you_o do_v such_o a_o man_n as_o this_o deserve_v 〈◊〉_d collection_n of_o antiquity_n when_o they_o agree_v not_o with_o his_o 〈◊〉_d protestant_n religion_n he_o who_o venture_v to_o contradict_v a_o 〈◊〉_d so_o genera_o know_v and_o to_o corrupt_v a_o write_n so_o common_a 〈◊〉_d in_o so_o many_o library_n and_o book_n what_o will_v he_o not_o 〈◊〉_d or_o have_v not_o do_v in_o paper_n and_o copy_n which_o he_o fancy_v 〈◊〉_d must_v take_v upon_o his_o sole_a word_n and_o testimony_n whosoever_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o full_a view_n of_o primate_n vsher_n unsincere_a deal_n in_o maintain_v protestancy_n which_o we_o attribute_v more_o to_o the_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o word_n he_o quote_v be_v of_o 〈◊〉_d that_o as_o the_o greek_n express_v themselves_o it_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d not_o simple_o fundamental_a fisher_n 〈◊〉_d for_o his_o lordship_n backwardness_n in_o deny_v the_o greek_n 〈…〉_z church_n that_o be_v of_o accuse_v they_o of_o heresy_n 〈◊〉_d forsooth_o they_o seem_v to_o maintain_v the_o equality_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o person_n so_o great_a a_o prelate_n and_o writer_n ought_v 〈◊〉_d know_v that_o a_o church_n may_v be_v a_o fall_v and_o heretical_a 〈◊〉_d for_o deny_v the_o generation_n and_o procession_n as_o well_o as_o 〈◊〉_d the_o equality_n and_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o person_n 〈◊〉_d indeed_o can_v the_o one_o be_v deny_v without_o deny_v the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d task_n be_v to_o examine_v the_o bishop_n sincerity_n not_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d first_o fraud_n be_v to_o pretend_v that_o catholic_n author_n 〈◊〉_d he_o in_o the_o protestant_a distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o 〈…〉_z article_n whereas_o we_o hold_v every_o article_n by_o 〈…〉_z motive_n though_o not_o of_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v of_o necessity_n the_o matter_n how_o ever_o so_o small_a 〈◊〉_d believe_v by_o we_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n whensoever_o 〈…〉_z propose_v to_o we_o as_o reveal_v by_o god_n or_o which_o 〈…〉_z whensoever_o we_o know_v any_o matter_n to_o be_v either_o 〈…〉_z scripture_n or_o declare_v by_o catholic_n tradition_n or_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o church_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o and_o can_v 〈◊〉_d if_o we_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o it_o so_o that_o doctrine_n which_o 〈…〉_z grievous_a error_n in_o the_o greek_n church_n we_o must_v call_v it_o plain_a 〈◊〉_d which_o make_v they_o no_o church_n because_o their_o error_n have_v 〈…〉_z heresy_n by_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d second_o fraud_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v that_o he_o conceal_v from_o 〈…〉_z the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o abuse_v the_o 〈◊〉_d author_n he_o cite_v as_o if_o they_o have_v understand_v it_o as_o his_o 〈…〉_z do_v set_v it_o down_o or_o have_v excuse_v the_o modern_a greek_n 〈◊〉_d and_o argue_v with_o their_o say_n and_o authority_n in_o favour_n of_o protestancy_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o modern_a greek_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n the_o bishop_n pretend_v they_o do_v and_o that_o they_o 〈◊〉_d pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o prove_v this_o say_n by_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d austin_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n found_v 33_o a_o err_a disputant_n be_v to_o
his_o religious_a habit_n though_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o monastery_n say_v mass_n and_o be_v much_o torment_v in_o his_o conscience_n for_o run_v so_o desperate_a a_o course_n as_o to_o appeal_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n father_n counsel_n and_o church_n upon_o a_o punctilio_fw-la of_o his_o mistake_a honour_n how_o often_o say_v he_o do_v my_o tremble_a hart_n beat_v with_o in_o i_o and_o reprehend_v i_o object_n against_o i_o that_o must_v strong_a argument_n be_v thou_o only_o wise_a do_v so_o many_o world_n err_v be_v so_o many_o age_n ignorant_a what_o if_o thou_o err_v and_o draw_v so_o many_o into_o error_n to_o be_v damn_v with_o thou_o eternal_o etc._n etc._n 244._o and_o again_o 273._o do_v thou_o o_o sole_a man_n and_o of_o no_o accounpt_n take_v upon_o thou_o so_o great_a matter_n what_o if_o thou_o be_v but_o one_o offend_v if_o god_n permit_v such_o so_o many_o and_o all_o to_o err_v why_o may_v he_o not_o permit_v thou_o to_o err_v angulari_fw-la hitherto_o apartaine_a those_o argument_n the_o church_n the_o church_n the_o father_n the_o father_n the_o counsel_n the_o custom_n the_o multitud_n and_o greatness_n of_o wise_a man_n who_o do_v not_o these_o cloud_n and_o doubt_n yea_o these_o sea_n of_o example_n overwhelm_v be_v thus_o torment_v and_o toss_v between_o his_o passion_n of_o pride_n and_o a_o perplexity_n of_o mind_n himself_o relate_v at_o large_a tom_n 7._o wittemb_v edit_fw-la a_o 1558._o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la angu_n how_o upon_o a_o certain_a time_n he_o be_v sudden_o awake_v about_o midnight_n and_o how_o sathan_n begin_v his_o disputation_n with_o he_o say_v harken_v right_o learned_a doctor_n luther_n thou_o know_v thou_o have_v celebrate_v private_a mass_n by_o the_o space_n of_o 15._o year_n almost_o every_o day_n what_o if_o such_o mass_n be_v horrible_a idolaty_n etc._n etc._n the_o devil_n speak_v thus_o to_o i_o i_o burst_v forth_o all_o into_o a_o sweat_n and_o my_o heart_n begin_v to_o tremble_v and_o leap_v voce_fw-la forti_fw-la &_o gravi_fw-la utitur_fw-la the_o devil_n have_v a_o grave_n and_o strong_a voice_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o i_o learn_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o somtym_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n man_n be_v find_v dead_a in_o their_o bed_n to_o the_o devil_n i_o answer_v i_o be_o a_o anoint_a priest_n receive_v consecration_n from_o a_o bishop_n and_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o order_n of_o my_o superior_n in_o these_o straits_n and_o agony_n i_o will_v fain_o vanquish_v the_o devil_n with_o the_o arm_n of_o popery_n and_o do_v object_v the_o intention_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n but_o satan_n with_o great_a force_n and_o vehemency_n do_v pursue_v go_v to_o show_v where_o it_o be_v write_v teach_v luther_n to_o appeal_v to_o scripture_n alone_o that_o a_o wicked_a and_o incredulous_a man_n can_v assist_v at_o the_o altar_n of_o christ_n and_o consecrate_v in_o the_o church_n faith_n etc._n etc._n if_o man_n have_v teach_v it_o without_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v altogether_o untrue_a but_o in_o this_o sort_n be_v you_o acustome_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o dark_a under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o set_v to_o sale_n your_o own_o abomination_n for_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n after_o this_o disputation_n luther_n be_v so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o devil_n that_o himself_o say_v tom_n 2._o germ._n jen._n fol._n 77._o believe_v i_o i_o know_v the_o devil_n very_o well_o for_o now_o and_o then_o he_o walk_v with_o i_o in_o my_o chamber_n when_o i_o be_o among_o company_n he_o do_v not_o trouble_v i_o but_o when_o he_o catch_v i_o alone_o than_o he_o teach_v i_o my_o manner_n and_o in_o conc._n dom._n reminiscere_fw-la fol._n 19_o apud_fw-la cochlaeum_n i_o be_o trough_o acquaint_v with_o the_o devil_n for_o i_o have_v eat_v a_o bushel_n of_o salt_n in_o his_o company_n yea_o confess_v in_o colloq_fw-la germ._n fol._n 275.281_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v his_o bed-fellow_n and_o lay_v with_o he_o more_o frequent_o and_o ●loser_a to_o he_o then_o his_o belove_a kate_n the_o nun._n and_o in_o litteris_fw-la ad_fw-la electorem_fw-la saxoniae_fw-la he_o say_v the_o devil_n do_v so_o run_v to_o and_o fro_o trough_n my_o brain_n that_o i_o can_v neither_o write_v nor_o read_v and_o in_o colloq_fw-la germ._n fol._n 283._o brag_v thus_o i_o have_v a_o couple_n of_o rare_a devil_n who_o attend_v and_o wait_v upon_o i_o most_o diligent_o they_o be_v no_o petty_a fiend_n but_o great_a devil_n yea_o great_a doctor_n of_o divinity_n among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o devil_n one_o of_o these_o two_o great_a doctor_n of_o divinity_n continue_v his_o disputation_n thus_o against_o luther_n now_o i_o urge_v this_o that_o thou_o do_v not_o consecrat_v in_o thy_o mass_n but_o do_v offer_v and_o adore_v only_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o propose_v the_o same_o to_o be_v adore_v by_o other_o &c._n &c._n the_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o other_o christian_n may_v communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o thou_o be_v anoint_v not_o to_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o sacrifice_v and_o against_o christ_n institution_n thou_o have_v use_v the_o mass_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o which_o christ_n do_v ordain_v for_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o priest_n to_o other_o communicant_n etc._n etc._n of_o this_o thou_o do_v make_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n o_o abomination_n above_o all_o abomination_n and_o after_o that_o zealous_a and_o learned_a devil_n have_v thus_o exclaim_v and_o argue_v against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n transubstantiation_n and_o adore_v of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n he_o reason_n also_o against_o the_o intercession_n and_o prayer_n to_o saint_n his_o word_n be_v set_v down_o by_o luther_n in_o the_o same_o place_n thus_o we_o spirit_n be_v reject_v do_v not_o confide_v in_o christ_n mercy_n neither_o do_v we_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o mediator_n or_o saviour_n but_o fear_v he_o as_o a_o cruel_a judge_n such_o be_v thou_o and_o all_o other_o papist_n faith_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o you_o do_v shun_v from_o christ_n as_o a_o cruel_a judge_n to_o mary_n and_o the_o saint_n and_o they_o be_v mediator_n between_v you_o and_o christ_n so_o be_v christ_n deprive_v of_o that_o glory_n in_o this_o disputation_n the_o devil_n have_v so_o good_a success_n that_o luther_n be_v convince_v and_o resolve_v to_o become_v a_o protestant_n and_o to_o preach_v and_o print_v not_o only_o against_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o other_o particular_n mention_v in_o his_o disputation_n but_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o be_v christ_n deprive_v of_o glory_n do_v luther_n ground_n his_o opinion_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n in_o favour_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n against_o merit_n satisfaction_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n and_o maintain_v these_o his_o diabolical_a opinion_n with_o so_o great_a obstinacy_n and_o so_o little_a respect_n to_o madness_n scripture_n church_n counsel_n father_n prince_n and_o prelate_n that_o such_o part_n of_o scripture_n as_o do_v not_o favour_v the_o devil_n argument_n he_o either_o reject_v they_o as_o apocrijphal_a or_o alter_v the_o word_n and_o sense_n in_o his_o translation_n and_o comment_n against_o all_o exemplar_n and_o copy_n either_o in_o greek_n hebrew_n or_o latin_n and_o all_o prince_n and_o prelate_n that_o contradict_v his_o error_n he_o vilify_v in_o so_o virulent_a and_o villainous_a term_n that_o none_o but_o a_o soul_n direct_v by_o the_o devil_n can_v resolve_v to_o print_v they_o his_o bull_n against_o all_o bishop_n be_v full_a of_o most_o vile_a stuff_n as_o also_o against_o the_o duke_n of_o brunzuick_a the_o elector_n of_o mentz_n etc._n etc._n in_o so_o much_o that_o his_o own_o scholar_n sleidan_n acknowledge_v his_o manner_n of_o writing_n to_o be_v unworthy_a base_a scurilous_a etc._n etc._n in_o his_o book_n and_o answer_v against_o k._n henry_n 8._o he_o call_v he_o a_o envious_a mad_a fool_n babble_v with_o much_o spittle_n in_o his_o mouth_n more_o furious_a than_o madness_n itself_o more_o doltish_a than_o folly_n itself_o endue_v with_o a_o impudent_a and_o whorish_a face_n without_o any_o one_o vein_n of_o princely_a blood_n in_o his_o body_n a_o lie_a sophist_n a_o damnable_a rot_a worm_n a_o basilisk_n and_o progeny_n of_o a_o adder_n a_o lie_a scurill_n cover_v with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o king_n a_o clounish_v wit_n a_o doltish_a head_n most_o wicked_a foolish_a and_o impudent_a henry_n all_o this_o he_o say_v tom_n 2._o wittenberg_n fol._n 333.334.335_o &_o fol._n 338.334_o he_o say_v the_o king_n do_v not_o only_o lie_v like_o a_o most_o vain_a scurre_v but_o pass_v a_o most_o wicked_a knave_n
their_o own_o canon_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o there_o be_v for_o the_o english_a church_n to_o make_v itself_o judge_v of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o the_o authority_n which_o the_o prelatic_a religion_n receive_v from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n that_o give_v but_o little_a advantage_n see_v the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o temporal_a law_n of_o every_o kingdom_n country_n and_o city_n besor_n and_o at_o the_o time_n that_o protestancy_n succeed_v and_o prevail_v and_o yet_o that_o legality_n be_v not_o value_v by_o the_o reformer_n the_o 35._o article_n be_v to_o authorise_v some_o puritan_n homily_n as_o the_o 2._o wherein_o the_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n in_o popery_n be_v much_o insist_v upon_o as_o if_o christian_n can_v easy_o mistake_v image_n for_o idol_n or_o saint_n for_o god_n jew_n and_o heretic_n have_v often_o endeavour_v to_o confound_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o catholic_n never_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o also_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v long_o since_o declare_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n against_o image_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n confirm_v the_o same_o decree_n of_o nice_a and_o demonstrat_n how_o far_o that_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o worship_v image_n be_v from_o any_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n sess_v 25._o be_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o of_o other_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o retain_v especial_o in_o church_n and_o that_o due_a honour_n be_v to_o be_v impart_v unto_o they_o not_o for_o that_o any_o divinity_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v in_o they_o or_o virtue_n for_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v or_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v beg_v of_o they_o or_o that_o hope_n be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o they_o as_o in_o time_n past_o the_o pagan_n do_v who_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o idol_n but_o because_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v exhibit_v to_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o first_o pattern_n which_o they_o resemble_v so_o that_o by_o the_o image_n which_o we_o kiss_v and_o before_o which_o we_o uncover_v our_o head_n and_o kneel_v we_o adore_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n who_o likeness_n they_o bear_v we_o reverence_v that_o which_o be_v ratify_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n especial_o of_o the_o second_o of_o nice_a against_o the_o impugner_n of_o image_n in_o the_o 36._o they_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o religion_n that_o their_o new_a form_n of_o ordain_v priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v valid_a and_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a but_o since_o his_o majesty_n happy_a restauration_n they_o have_v judge_v the_o contrary_a and_o therefore_o think_v necessary_a to_o add_v thereunto_o the_o word_n priest_n and_o bishop_n restauration_n yet_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n for_o before_o they_o can_v have_v a_o true_a clergy_n they_o must_v change_v the_o character_n of_o the_o ordainer_n as_o well_o as_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n a_o valid_a form_n of_o ordination_n pronounce_v by_o a_o minister_n not_o valid_o ordain_v give_v no_o more_o character_n then_o if_o it_o have_v continue_v invalid_a and_o never_o be_v alter_v the_o present_a protestant_a bishop_n who_o change_v the_o form_n of_o their_o own_o ordination_n upon_o their_o adversary_n objection_n of_o the_o invalidity_n thereof_o may_v as_o well_o submit_v to_o be_v ordain_v by_o catholic_n bishop_n as_o allow_v by_o alter_v the_o from_o after_o so_o long_a a_o time_n and_o dispute_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v themselves_o and_o their_o predecessor_n priest_n or_o bishop_n in_o their_o 37._o article_n they_o give_v a_o spiritual_a supremacy_n to_o the_o temporal_a sovereign_n but_o because_o the_o world_n laugh_v at_o that_o vanity_n and_o at_o the_o statute_n 1._o &_o 8._o eliz._n 1._o wherein_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o english_a sovereignty_n be_v so_o spiritual_a as_o that_o it_o may_v give_v to_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o whether_o man_n or_o woman_n lay_v or_o ecclesiastic_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o exercise_v any_o spiritual_a function_n and_o consecrat_v priest_n and_o bishop_n they_o will_v fain_o make_v we_o now_o believe_v that_o they_o do_v not_o attribute_v to_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o successor_n any_o power_n of_o minister_a god_n word_n or_o the_o sacrament_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o aforesaid_a statute_n yet_o in_o force_n certify_v the_o contrary_a and_o indeed_o if_o none_o can_v give_v what_o himself_o have_v not_o see_v the_o king_n of_o england_n can_v give_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o any_o person_n watsoever_o to_o consecrat_v priest_n and_o bishop_n and_o to_o exercise_v all_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a ministry_n and_o jurisdiction_n concern_v god_n word_n and_o sacrament_n this_o power_n and_o ministry_n can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v inherant_a in_o themselves_o in_o the_o 38._o and_o 39_o article_n they_o endeavour_v to_o supress_v some_o error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n which_o necessary_o follow_v from_o the_o foundation_n and_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n for_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o deprive_v man_n of_o a_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n whereof_o they_o be_v in_o present_a possession_n and_o which_o their_o predecessor_n have_v peaceable_o enjoy_v time_n out_o of_o memory_n the_o consequence_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n to_o deprive_v man_n of_o their_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n dominion_n riches_n and_o good_n be_v evident_a by_o a_o parity_n of_o reason_n for_o if_o peaceable_a and_o present_a possession_n confirm_v by_o a_o prescription_n of_o many_o age_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o ground_v right_a for_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n to_o govern_v soul_n and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o church_n live_n there_o be_v no_o temporal_a prince_n or_o person_n can_v be_v secure_a or_o have_v a_o right_a to_o govern_v subject_n or_o possess_v his_o dominion_n so_o that_o by_o the_o same_o warrant_v whereby_o prelatic_a protestant_n have_v take_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o roman_a clergy_n their_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o temporality_n the_o anabaptist_n and_o all_o other_o may_v evident_o demonstrat_fw-la that_o all_o good_n be_v common_a and_o no_o one_o person_n can_v pretend_v right_a to_o superiority_n or_o any_o thing_n he_o do_v possess_v sect_n vi_o of_o the_o effect_n which_o these_o 39_o article_n of_o prelatic_a protestancy_n immediate_o produce_v in_o england_n and_o may_v produce_v at_o any_o time_n in_o every_o state_n where_o such_o principle_n be_v make_v legal_a and_o how_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n be_v restore_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n of_o queen_n mary_n after_o that_o prelatic_a protestancy_n have_v not_o only_o be_v permit_v but_o establish_v by_o parliament_n in_o england_n ensue_v the_o destruction_n of_o many_o thousand_o innocent_a people_n as_o also_o of_o the_o protector_n seamor_n and_o k._n eduard_n 6._o together_o with_o the_o exclusion_n of_o q._n marry_o and_o other_o the_o lawful_a heir_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o in_o trusion_n of_o the_o lady_n jane_n grey_n and_o in_o she_o of_o dudly_n son_n and_o family_n unto_o the_o royal_a throne_n these_o be_v effect_n of_o protestancy_n not_o event_n of_o fortunc_fw-la they_o be_v design_n drive_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n the_o like_a whereof_o any_o politic_a and_o popular_a subject_n may_v compass_v as_o well_o as_o dudley_n witness_v our_o late_a long_a parliament_n and_o oliver_n cromwel_n proceed_n though_o k._n edward_n 6._o be_v but_o a_o child_n and_o his_o uncle_n the_o protector_n no_o great_a politician_n yet_o they_o have_v a_o grave_n and_o wise_a council_n but_o against_o the_o liberty_n and_o latitude_n which_o man_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n no_o conduct_n can_v prevail_v nor_o government_n be_v safe_a as_o appear_v in_o many_o example_n and_o in_o our_o late_a soueraign'_v reign_v and_o death_n jt_n in_o vain_a to_o make_v particular_a article_n of_o religion_n or_o temporal_a statute_n if_o there_o be_v a_o general_a principle_n admit_v as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o both_o be_v render_v unsignificant_a one_o of_o the_o general_a principle_n and_o indeed_o the_o foundation_n of_o prelatic_a protestancy_n be_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o private_a man_n and_o subject_n such_o be_v all_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n to_o despise_v and_o depose_v their_o spiritual_a superior_n by_o their_o own_o arbitrary_a interpretation_n and_o application_n of_o scripture_n notwithstanding_o the_o peaceable_a possession_n immemorial_n prescription_n legality_n and_o exercise_v of_o their_o say_a superiour_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o hence_o it_o
singular_a glory_n and_o vain_a reputation_n conceive_v sundry_a subtle_a and_o disloyal_a practice_n for_o the_o interruption_n and_o breach_n of_o the_o say_v most_o lawful_a and_o godly_a concord_n and_o endeaver_v to_o put_v the_o same_o in_o ure_n devise_v first_o to_o insinuat_fw-la a_o scruple_n into_o the_o king_n your_o father_n conscience_n of_o a_o unlawful_a marriage_n between_o he_o and_o his_o most_o lawful_a wife_n the_o queen_n your_o highnes_n mother_n pretend_v for_o the_o ground_n thereof_o that_o the_o same_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o thereupon_o cease_v not_o to_o persuade_v continualy_a unto_o the_o say_a king_n your_o father_n that_o he_o can_v not_o without_o danger_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o soul_n continue_v with_o his_o say_a most_o lawful_a wife_n but_o must_v be_v separate_v and_o divorce_v from_o she_o and_o to_o this_o intent_n cause_v the_o seal_n a●_n well_o of_o certain_a university_n in_o italy_n and_o france_n to_o be_v get_v as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o testimony_n by_o the_o corruption_n of_o money_n with_o a_o few_o light_a person_n scholar_n of_o the_o same_o university_n as_o also_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o university_n of_o this_o realm_n to_o be_v obtain_v by_o great_a travail_n sinister_a work_n secret_a threaten_n and_o entreating_n of_o some_o man_n in_o authority_n especial_o send_v at_o that_o time_n thither_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o how_o that_o finaly_a thomas_n cranmer_n new_o make_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n most_o ungodly_a and_o against_o all_o law_n equity_n and_o conscience_n prosecute_v the_o same_o wicked_a device_n of_o divorce_n and_o separation_n of_o the_o say_a king_n your_o father_n and_o queen_n your_o mother_n call_v before_o he_o ex_fw-la officio_fw-la the_o hear_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o marriage_n and_o take_v his_o foundation_n partly_o upon_o his_o own_o unadvised_a judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n join_v there_o with_o the_o pretend_a testimony_n of_o the_o say_a university_n and_o partly_o upon_o bare_a and_o most_o untrue_a conjectur_n gather_v and_o admit_v by_o he_o upon_o matter_n of_o no_o strength_n or_o effect_n but_o only_o by_o supposal_n and_o without_o admit_v or_o hear_v any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v say_v by_o the_o queen_n your_o mother_n or_o by_o any_o other_o on_o her_o behalf_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o say_v late_o your_o mother_n proceed_v pronounce_v and_o discern_v declare_v and_o give_v sentence_n the_o same_o most_o lawful_a and_o undoubted_a matrimony_n to_o be_v naught_o and_o to_o be_v contract_v against_o god_n law_n and_o of_o no_o value_n but_o lack_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o say_v most_o noble_a king_n your_o father_n and_o the_o say_v noble_a queen_n your_o mother_n so_o marry_v together_o do_v separat_fw-la and_o divorce_v and_o the_o same_o your_o most_o noble_a father_n king_n henry_n the_o 8._o and_o the_o say_v noble_a queen_n your_o mother_n from_o the_o band_n of_o the_o same_o most_o lawful_a matrimony_n do_v pronounce_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o same_o his_o unlawful_a sentence_n to_o be_v free_a discharged_z and_o set_v at_o liberty_n which_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n so_o give_v by_o unlawful_a and_o corrupt_a mean_n and_o way_n by_o the_o say_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v afterward_o upon_o certain_a affection_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o two_o several_a act_n the_o one_o make_v in_o the_o 25._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n to_o the_o say_a king_n your_o highnes_n father_n and_o entitle_v a_o act_n of_o declare_v the_o establishment_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o king_n most_o royal_a majesty_n of_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o his_o realm_n the_o other_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v in_o the_o 28._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o say_a king_n your_o highnes_n father_n entitle_v a_o act_n for_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o the_o realm_n in_o the_o which_o say_v two_o act_n be_v contain_v the_o illegitimation_n of_o your_o most_o noble_a person_n which_o your_o say_v most_o noble_a person_n be_v bear_v in_o so_o solemn_a a_o marriage_n so_o open_o approve_v in_o the_o world_n and_o with_o so_o good_a faith_n both_o first_o contract_v and_o also_o by_o so_o many_o year_n continue_v between_o your_o most_o noble_a parent_n and_o the_o same_o marriage_n in_o very_a deed_n not_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n can_v not_o by_o any_o reason_n or_o equity_n in_o this_o case_n be_v so_o spot_v and_o now_o we_o your_o highnes_n say_v most_o love_v faithful_a and_o obedient_a subject_n of_o a_o godly_a heart_n and_o true_a meaning_n free_o and_o frank_o without_o fear_n fancy_n or_o any_o other_o corrupt_a motion_n or_o sensual_a affection_n consider_v that_o this_o foresay_a marriage_n have_v its_o beginning_n of_o god_n and_o by_o he_o be_v continue_v and_o therefore_o be_v receive_v and_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o most_o true_a just_a lawful_a and_o to_o all_o respect_n a_o sincere_a and_o perfect_a marriage_n nor_o can_v nor_o ought_v by_o any_o man_n power_n authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n be_v dissolve_v break_v or_o separate_v for_o who_o god_n join_v no_o man_n can_v nor_o aught_o to_o put_v a_o sunder_a and_o consider_v also_o how_o during_o the_o same_o marriage_n in_o godly_a concord_n the_o realm_n in_o all_o degree_n flourish_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o great_a reputation_n of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o same_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n understand_v manifest_o that_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o say_a device_n and_o practice_n for_o the_o say_a divorce_n proceed_v first_o of_o malice_n and_o vain_a glory_n and_o afterward_o be_v prosecute_v and_o follow_v of_o fond_a affection_n and_o sensual_a fantasy_n and_o fina_o execute_v and_o put_v in_o effect_n by_o corruption_n ignorance_n and_o flattery_n and_o not_o only_a feel_n to_o our_o great_a sorrow_n damage_n and_o regret_n how_o shameful_a ignominy_n rebuk_n slander_n and_o contempt_n yea_o with_o death_n pestilence_n and_o war_n disobedience_n rebellion_n insurrection_n and_o divers_a other_o great_a and_o grievous_a plague_n god_n of_o his_o justice_n have_v send_v upon_o we_o ever_o since_o this_o ungodly_a purpose_n be_v first_o begin_v and_o practise_v but_o also_o see_v evident_o before_o our_o eye_n that_o unless_o so_o great_a a_o injustice_n as_o this_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o continue_v be_v rebuke_v and_o that_o the_o say_v fall_n and_o wrongful_a process_n judgement_n and_o sentence_n with_o their_o dependence_n be_v repeal_v and_o revoke_v nothing_o be_v less_o to_o be_v doubt_v than_o that_o great_a plague_n and_o stroke_n be_v like_a to_o increase_v and_o continue_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o with_o in_o this_o realm_n do_v beseech_v your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n as_o well_o in_o respect_n of_o your_o own_o honour_n dignity_n and_o just_a title_n as_o for_o truth_n sake_n wherewith_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o your_o highness_n also_o will_v be_v special_o move_v in_o conscience_n and_o also_o for_o the_o entire_a love_n favour_n and_o affection_n which_o your_o majesty_n bear_v to_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o for_o the_o good_a peace_n unity_n and_o rest_n of_o we_o your_o most_o faithful_a subject_n and_o our_o posterity_n that_o it_o may_v be_v enact_v by_o your_o highness_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o commons_o in_o this_o present_a parliament_n assemble_v and_o be_v it_o enact_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o present_a parliament_n that_o all_o and_o every_o decree_n sentence_n and_o judgement_n of_o divorce_n and_o separation_n between_o the_o say_a king_n your_o father_n and_o the_o say_v late_a queen_n your_o mother_n and_o all_o the_o process_n commence_v follow_v give_v make_v or_o promulge_v by_o the_o say_v thomas_n cranmer_n then_z archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n or_o by_o any_o other_o person_n or_o person_n whatsoever_o whereby_o the_o same_o most_o just_a pure_a and_o lawful_a marriage_n between_o the_o say_v late_a king_n your_o father_n and_o the_o say_v late_a queen_n your_o mother_n be_v or_o be_v pronounce_v or_o in_o any_o wise_a declare_v to_o be_v unlawful_a or_o unjust_a or_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o from_o hence_o forth_o of_o no_o force_n validity_n or_o effect_n but_o be_v utter_o naught_o void_a frustrate_a and_o annihilat_fw-la to_o all_o intent_n construction_n and_o purpose_n as_o if_o the_o same_o have_v never_o be_v give_v or_o pronounce_v and_o be_v it_o also_o enact_v by_o the_o authority_n aforesaid_a that_o as_o well_o the_o say_a act_n of_o parliament_n entitle_v a_o act_n declare_v the_o establishment_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o king_n be_v most_o royal_a majesty_n to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n
of_o this_o realm_n make_v in_o the_o 25._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o king_n your_o father_n be_v repeal_v and_o be_v it_o void_a and_o of_o no_o effect_n as_o also_o all_o and_o every_o such_o clause_n article_n branch_n and_o matter_n contain_v and_o express_v in_o the_o afforsay_v act_n of_o parliament_n make_v in_o the_o say_v 28._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o say_v late_a king_n your_o father_n or_o in_o any_o other_o act_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o whereby_o your_o highness_n be_v name_v or_o declare_v to_o be_v ilegitimat_fw-la or_o the_o say_a marriage_n between_o the_o say_a king_n your_o father_n and_o the_o say_a queen_n your_o mother_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o by_o any_o mean_v unlawful_a shall_v be_v and_o be_v repeal_v and_o be_v void_a and_o of_o no_o force_n nor_o effect_n to_o all_o intent_n construction_n and_o purpose_n as_o if_o the_o same_o sentence_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n have_v never_o be_v have_v nor_o make_v and_o that_o the_o say_a marriage_n have_v and_o solemnize_v between_o your_o say_a most_o noble_a father_n king_n henry_n and_o your_o say_v most_o noble_a mother_n queen_n catharin_n shall_v be_v definitiu_o clear_o and_o absolute_o declare_v deem_v and_o adjudge_v be_v and_o stand_v with_o god_n law_n and_o his_o most_o holy_a word_n and_o to_o be_v accept_v repute_a and_o take_v of_o good_a effect_n and_o validity_n to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n etc._n etc._n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o force_n and_o fraud_n use_v by_o king_n henry_n 8._o cranmer_z and_o other_o engage_v in_o this_o divorce_n be_v so_o plain_o manifest_v the_o catholic_n faith_n reestablish_v the_o folly_n and_o falsehood_n of_o former_a schism_n and_o heresy_n public_o acknowledge_v yet_o no_o soon_o be_v queen_n mary_n decease_v than_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o her_o protestant_a faction_n resolve_v to_o return_v to_o the_o former_a error_n whereunto_o vicious_a person_n who_o always_o be_v the_o great_a number_n be_v as_o vehement_o incline_v as_o man_n be_v to_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n and_o to_o excuse_v the_o sensuality_n which_o they_o practise_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o religion_n 107._o and_o though_o it_o seem_v a_o business_n of_o great_a difficulty_n for_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o her_o council_n to_o revive_v a_o reformation_n which_o have_v be_v so_o late_o cry_v down_o as_o schism_n and_o heresy_n by_o the_o unanimous_a concurrence_n of_o a_o full_a and_o lawful_a parliament_n yet_o her_o regal_a authority_n her_o sex_n and_o word_n wrought_v so_o strong_o upon_o the_o weakness_n of_o some_o and_o upon_o the_o ambition_n of_o other_o that_o she_o gain_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n and_o yet_o but_o by_o on_o only_a voice_n for_o establish_v protestancy_n the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n employ_v in_o her_o service_n all_o their_o interest_n with_o friend_n and_o relation_n against_o the_o religion_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o such_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n say_v d._n r_o heylin_n as_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o election_n of_o their_o several_a county_n retain_v such_o for_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o they_o conceive_v most_o lik_o to_o comply_v with_o their_o intention_n for_o a_o reformation_n beside_o say_v he_o the_o queen_n be_v young_a unmarried_a and_o like_a enough_o to_o entertain_v some_o thought_n of_o a_o husband_n so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o great_a marvel_n not_o only_o if_o many_o of_o the_o nobility_n but_o some_o even_o of_o the_o gentry_n also_o flatter_v themselves_o with_o possibility_n of_o be_v the_o man_n who_o she_o may_v choose_v to_o be_v her_o partner_n in_o the_o regal_a diadem_n which_o hope_v much_o smooth_v the_o way_n to_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o her_o desire_n which_o otherwise_o may_v have_v prove_v more_o rugged_a and_o unpassable_a etc._n etc._n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o device_n and_o compliance_n they_o never_o pass_v a_o act_n in_o parliament_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o her_o mother_n marriage_n on_o which_o say_v heylin_n her_o title_n most_o depend_v it_o seem_v the_o late_a former_a act_n declare_v the_o validity_n of_o queen_n catherine_n marriage_n deter_v she_o from_o attempt_v a_o other_o incompatible_a therewith_o and_o wherein_o man_n must_v have_v have_v contradict_v themselves_o most_o imprudent_o as_o also_o the_o truth_n assert_v by_o the_o many_o witness_n and_o confirm_v with_o such_o individual_a circumstance_n that_o without_o infamy_n to_o the_o late_a parliament_n they_o can_v not_o take_v from_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o brand_n of_o bastardy_n yet_o they_o resolve_v it_o shall_v be_v no_o bar_n between_o she_o and_o the_o crown_n and_o so_o they_o thrust_v she_o into_o the_o throne_n which_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o mary_n steward_n queen_n of_o scotland_n as_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o that_o be_v not_o persuade_v catholic_n religion_n do_v make_v sovereigns_n incapable_a of_o regal_a jurisdiction_n sect_n vii_o other_o effect_n of_o protestancy_n after_o it_o be_v revive_v in_o england_n by_o q._n elizabeth_n to_o exclude_v the_o royal_a family_n of_o the_o steward_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o nulity_n of_o she_o clergy_n character_n and_o jurisdiction_n by_o king_n henry_n 8._o his_o revolt_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o the_o religion_n but_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n be_v so_o embroil_v that_o very_o many_o who_o have_v no_o right_n entertain_v hope_n of_o ascend_v into_o the_o royal_a throne_n some_o by_o fish_v in_o trouble_a water_n other_o by_o marry_v q._n elizabeth_n other_o by_o their_o descent_n from_o the_o young_a daughter_n of_o king_n henry_n 7._o all_o mention_n of_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o elder_a sister_n have_v be_v omit_v or_o blot_v out_o of_o the_o last_o will_v and_o testament_n of_o k._n henry_n 8._o and_o q._n elizabeth_n have_v be_v declare_v ilegitimat_fw-la by_o three_o act_n of_o different_a parliament_n which_o never_o yet_o be_v repeal_v very_o few_o there_o be_v that_o do_v not_o hold_v their_o own_o title_n to_o be_v more_o legal_a than_o she_o this_o confusion_n also_o make_v the_o queen_n of_o scot_n know_v right_o to_o be_v neglect_v but_o the_o french_a king_n who_o be_v concern_v therein_o command_v she_o to_o be_v proclaim_v q._n of_o england_n and_o quarter_v the_o arm_n of_o great_a brittany_n with_o his_o lily_n q._n elizabeth_n apprehend_v some_o danger_n from_o a_o title_n so_o clear_a second_v with_o the_o power_n of_o france_n and_o scotland_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o secretary_n cecil_n and_o other_o resolve_v upon_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o catholic_n party_n and_o clergy_n which_o favour_v the_o steward_n claim_n 5.22_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n as_o be_v suitable_a both_o to_o her_o birth_n and_o interest_n be_v revive_v and_o a_o new_a character_n of_o priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n devise_v not_o imprint_v in_o the_o soul_n by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n but_o in_o wax_n as_o if_o forsooth_o by_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o a_o she_o supremacy_n a_o woman_n or_o lay_v man_n may_v make_v bishop_n this_o superficial_a formality_n be_v declare_v a_o sufficient_a character_n and_o ground_n of_o episcopacy_n by_o a_o junta_n of_o her_o majesty_n lawyer_n and_o divine_n as_o appear_v in_o their_o definitive_a sentence_n and_o her_o commission_n 1566_o to_o the_o consecrater_n of_o her_o first_o bishop_n d._n r_o parker_n and_o other_o wherein_o she_o dispense_v with_o all_o the_o inhability_n and_o incapasity_n even_o of_o their_o state_n and_o condition_n because_o the_o true_a bishop_n refuse_v to_o ordain_v her_o clergy_n and_o a_o clergy_n she_o be_v resolve_v to_o have_v that_o will_v vote_n in_o parliament_n and_o instruct_v the_o people_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a for_o her_o succession_n and_o security_n and_o because_o the_o roman_n catholic_n writer_n of_o those_o time_n laugh_v at_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n episcopacy_n and_o bid_v they_o show_v the_o letter_n of_o their_o order_n not_o the_o letter_n paten_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o tell_v they_o a_o secular_a prince_n may_v give_v they_o the_o revenue_n of_o bishopric_n but_o not_o the_o character_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o same_o catholic_n writer_n insist_v much_o upon_o their_o adversary_n not_o be_v able_a to_o name_v what_o bishop_n do_v consecrat_v they_o and_o beside_o plead_v in_o the_o public_a court_n they_o be_v not_o realy_a nor_o legaly_a ordain_v and_o that_o afterward_o it_o appear_v so_o to_o the_o jury_n appoint_v for_o the_o examination_n thereof_o both_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o bishop_n find_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o her_o credit_n and_o their_o character_n to_o ratify_v all_o act_n and_o thing_n
have_v make_v or_o do_v by_o any_o person_n or_o person_n in_o or_o about_o any_o consecration_n 1._o confirmation_n or_o invest_v of_o any_o person_n or_o person_n elect_v to_o the_o office_n or_o dignity_n of_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n or_o commission_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o reign_n so_o that_o to_o know_v whether_o d._n r_o parker_n and_o his_o comrade_n be_v true_a bishop_n none_o must_v have_v examine_v whether_o they_o have_v be_v consecrate_v by_o other_o bishop_n but_o only_o whether_o the_o person_n or_o person_n that_o be_v the_o consecrator_n whether_o lay_v man_n or_o ecclesiastic_a it_o mattered_a not_o perform_v that_o ceremony_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n or_o commission_n if_o they_o can_v show_v her_o great_a seal_n they_o may_v use_v what_o matter_n and_o form_n they_o please_v for_o 8._o by_o the_o act_n 1._o &_o 8._o eliz._n there_o be_v give_v to_o the_o queen_n highness_n her_o heir_n etc._n etc._n full_a power_n and_o authority_n by_o letter_n patent_n under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o assign_v name_n and_o authorise_v such_o person_n or_o person_n as_o she_o and_o they_o shall_v think_v meet_a and_o convenient_a any_o lie_v man_n or_o woman_n will_v serve_v turn_n to_o exercise_v use_v enjoy_v and_o execute_v under_o her_o highness_n all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n preeminence_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o wise_a touch_v or_o concern_v any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n within_o this_o realm_n or_o any_o other_o her_o majesty_n dominion_n or_o country_n now_o priesthood_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o spiritual_a power_n to_o consecrat_fw-mi christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o forgive_v sin_n and_o episcopacy_n include_v beside_o the_o same_o a_o spiritual_a power_n to_o consecrat_v and_o ordain_v other_o priest_n and_o bishop_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o by_o these_o word_n and_o statut_fw-la the_o queen_n may_v and_o her_o successor_n may_v by_o their_o sole_a letter_n patent_n and_o great_a seal_n make_v any_o lie_v man_n whether_o carter_n or_o catchpole_n a_o protestant_a bishop_n or_o priest_n see_v thereby_o he_o receive_v full_a power_n to_o exercise_v use_n execute_v etc._n etc._n all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n preeminency_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o wise_a touch_v or_o concern_v any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n etc._n etc._n and_o because_o there_o may_v remain_v no_o ambiguity_n or_o scruple_n of_o parker_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_a bishop_n valid_a and_o legal_a consecration_n the_o same_o statut_fw-la 8._o elizabeth_z 1._o assure_v we_o that_o the_o queen_n in_o her_o letter_n patent_n for_o that_o purpose_n direct_v to_o any_o archbishop_n bishop_n or_o other_o mark_z the_o word_n other_o for_o the_o confirm_v invest_v and_o consecrate_v of_o any_o person_n elect_v to_o the_o office_n or_o dignity_n of_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n have_v not_o only_o use_v such_o word_n and_o sentence_n as_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o late_a king_n henry_n and_o king_n edward_z her_o majesty_n father_n and_o brother_n in_o their_o like_a letter_n patent_n make_v for_o such_o cause_n but_o also_o have_v use_v divers_a other_o general_a word_n and_o sentence_n whereby_o her_o majesty_n by_o her_o supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n have_v dispense_v with_o all_o cause_n or_o doubt_n of_o any_o inperfection_n or_o disability_n that_o can_v or_o may_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v object_v against_o the_o same_o as_o by_o her_o majesty_n say_v letter_n patent_n remain_v on_o record_n more_o plain_o will_v appear_v now_o mr._n bramhal_o the_o late_a primate_n will_v fain_o make_v the_o parliament_n so_o senseless_a and_o his_o reader_n so_o simple_a as_o to_o refer_v the_o word_n mention_v and_o compare_v the_o record_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o father_n and_o brother_n time_n in_o this_o act_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n register_n and_o not_o to_o their_o majesty_n letter_n patent_n where_o as_o by_o the_o whole_a context_n and_o discourse_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o parliament_n drift_n be_v to_o show_v no_o such_o ceremonious_a solemnity_n as_o of_o late_a have_v be_v pretend_v and_o print_v by_o mr._n mason_n be_v necessary_a have_v there_o be_v any_o such_o legal_a or_o formal_a consecration_n at_o lambeth_n as_o 50._o year_n after_o be_v forge_v and_o foist_v into_o the_o archbishops_n register_n the_o parliament_n 8._o eliz._n 1._o will_v have_v remit_v we_o thereunto_o name_v lambeth_n and_o not_o insist_v altogeth_a upon_o the_o queen_n dispensation_n for_o the_o validity_n and_o legality_n of_o her_o first_o bishop_n consecration_n and_o character_n 1659._o many_o be_v the_o reason_n late_o print_v and_o not_o like_a to_o be_v answer_v that_o persuade_v all_o prudent_a man_n who_o have_v not_o too_o great_a a_o passion_n for_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n to_o believe_v that_o mr._n mason_n new_a find_v register_n of_o lambeth_n be_v forge_v 1._o it_o be_v never_o produce_v nor_o mention_v by_o the_o first_o bishop_n so_o much_o press_v by_o their_o adversary_n to_o show_v some_o register_n or_o any_o evidence_n for_o their_o consecration_n 2._o they_o be_v only_o desire_v to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v where_o when_o and_o by_o who_o they_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n question_n easy_o answer_v have_v they_o be_v consecrate_v at_o lambeth_n or_o any_o register_n then_o extant_a when_o dr._n harding_n stapleton_n and_o other_o charge_v they_o with_o nulity_n and_o illegality_n of_o episcopal_a character_n 3._o it_o be_v no_o more_o credible_a that_o such_o know_v and_o conscientious_a man_n as_o stapleton_n harding_n fitzherbert_n etc._n etc._n then_o live_v in_o england_n and_o probable_o at_o london_n will_v question_v so_o public_a and_o solemn_a a_o action_n than_o it_o be_v that_o a_o sober_a man_n will_v now_o call_v in_o doubt_n king_n charl'_v 2._o coronation_n at_o westminster_n or_o ask_v in_o print_n who_o set_v the_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n pretend_v he_o never_o have_v be_v crown_v and_o though_o bishop_n godwin_n and_o other_o prelatic_a writer_n abuse_v dr._n harding_n holiwood_n fitzsimons_n etc._n etc._n for_o relate_v the_o meeting_n of_o the_o first_o protestant_n bishop_n with_o a_o design_n to_o be_v ordain_v at_o the_o nagshead_n in_o cheapside_n yet_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o albeit_o there_o can_v be_v no_o design_n to_o feign_v that_o story_n yet_o our_o controversy_n with_o the_o prelaticks_n be_v not_o whether_o their_o first_o prelate_n be_v ordain_v there_o but_o whether_o they_o be_v ordain_v any_o where_o we_o know_v bishop_n may_v be_v as_o valid_o consecrate_v in_o a_o tavern_n though_o not_o so_o decent_o as_o in_o a_o church_n but_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o also_o consider_v 132._o that_o if_o dr._n parker_n and_o their_o first_o bishop_n be_v so_o narrow_o watch_v by_o mr._n neal_n and_o other_o catholic_n who_o primate_n bramhal_o do_v call_v spy_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v merry_a in_o a_o tavern_n without_o their_o knowledge_n they_o can_v hardly_o perform_v so_o serious_a and_o solemn_a a_o action_n in_o a_o church_n as_o the_o first_o consecration_n of_o a_o protestant_a archbishop_n without_o their_o observation_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n then_o so_o much_o seek_v after_o and_o controverse_v of_o so_o great_a curiosity_n in_o itself_o and_o of_o great_a concern_n to_o we_o the_o total_a credit_n and_o be_v of_o their_o new_a reformation_n depend_v thereupon_o and_o yet_o for_o above_o 50._o year_n none_o of_o the_o writer_n of_o either_o side_n catholic_n or_o protestant_n who_o mention_v all_o other_o particular_n relate_v to_o the_o reformation_n write_v or_o speak_v a_o word_n of_o this_o solemnity_n at_o lambeth_n the_o puritan_n indeed_o upray_v the_o prelaticks_n with_o say_v their_o episcopal_a ordination_n in_o england_n have_v its_o beginning_n and_o progress_n in_o a_o corner_n not_o in_o a_o congregation_n 43._o but_o we_o can_v not_o imagine_v they_o can_v mistake_v the_o archiepiscopal_a chapel_n of_o lambeth_n for_o a_o corner_n or_o deny_v that_o the_o great_a assembly_n pretend_v to_o have_v have_v be_v at_o dr._n parker_n consecration_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o congregation_n queen_n elizabeth_n clergy_n thus_o create_v by_o her_o patent_n and_o parliament_n they_o endeavour_v to_o show_v themselves_o gratful_a to_o her_o majesty_n by_o make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o popery_n by_o the_o principle_n whereof_o she_o be_v uncapable_a of_o the_o crown_n be_v idolatry_n the_o pope_n antichrist_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o that_o end_n corrupt_v scripture_n in_o their_o english_a translation_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v hereafter_o and_o because_o their_o fraud_n and_o folly_n be_v discover_v by_o catholic_n priest_n part_n the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a law_n be_v enact_v and_o execute_v
the_o father_n contradict_v his_o protestant_n doctrine_n bold_o affirm_v 434_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o father_n of_o all_o former_a age_n to_o have_v be_v blind_a and_o most_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o have_v err_v all_o their_o life_n time_n and_o in_o colloq_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr patribus_fw-la ecclesioe_v luther_n say_v of_o sundry_a father_n in_o particular_a thus_o in_o the_o write_n of_o jerome_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o sound_a religion_n tertullian_n be_v very_o superstitious_a i_o have_v hold_v origen_n long_o since_o accurse_v of_o chrysostom_n i_o make_v no_o account_n basil_n be_v of_o no_o worth_n he_o be_v whole_o a_o monk_n i_o way_n he_o not_o a_o hair_n cyprian_n be_v a_o weak_a divine_a etc._n etc._n add_v further_o that_o the_o church_n do_v degenerate_a in_o the_o apostle_n age_n and_o that_o the_o apology_n of_o his_o scholar_n philip_n melancton_n do_v far_o exceed_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o exceed_v even_o austin_n himself_o and_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr formulâ_fw-la missae_fw-la &_o in_o tom_n 3._o germ._n folio_n 274._o if_o the_o council_n shall_v in_o any_o case_n decree_v this_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n lest_o of_o all_o then_o will_v we_o use_v both_o kind_n yea_o rather_o in_o despite_n of_o the_o council_n and_o that_o decree_n we_o will_v use_v either_o but_o one_o kind_n or_o neither_o notwithstanding_o christ_n precept_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o spiritual_a refection_n and_o in_o no_o case_n both_o but_o this_o man_n bare_a word_n ought_v not_o to_o weigh_v more_o than_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n that_o go_v before_o he_o or_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o constant_a tradition_n of_o 15._o age_n especial_o if_o we_o reflect_v upon_o the_o pride_n and_o passion_n which_o he_o declare_v in_o all_o his_o write_n not_o only_o against_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o against_o his_o own_o disciple_n and_o as_o have_v be_v say_v how_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o reformation_n when_o his_o spirit_n be_v in_o its_o primitive_a fervour_n he_o do_v plain_o confess_v that_o he_o do_v favour_n idolatry_n to_o contradict_v carolstadius_n for_o anticipate_v his_o command_n in_o a_o point_n of_o the_o reformation_n viz._n for_o abolish_n of_o the_o adoration_n and_o elevation_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n in_o his_o absence_n 210._o i_o do_v know_v say_v he_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v idolatricall_a yet_o nevertheless_o i_o do_v retain_v it_o in_o the_o church_n at_o wittenberg_n to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v despite_v the_o devil_n carolstadius_n and_o yet_o this_o wicked_a friar_n authority_n be_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o protestancy_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o his_o know_a impiety_n he_o be_v term_v by_o their_o writer_n 70._o holy_a saint_n luther_n a_o man_n send_v of_o god_n to_o lighten_v the_o world_n 426_o the_o helias_n conductor_n and_o chariot_n of_o israel_n to_o be_v reverence_v next_o after_o christ_n and_o paul_n luthero_n great_a then_o who_o live_v not_o since_o the_o apostle_n tim_n seqq_fw-la the_o angel_n and_o last_o trumpet_n of_o god_n who_o cal_a be_v 17._o immediate_a and_o extraordinary_a etc._n etc._n let_v the_o most_o peevish_a protestant_n i_o say_v once_o more_o be_v judge_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o probable_a and_o possible_a that_o one_o private_a proud_a and_o 152._o passionate_a man_n do_v mistake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o misapply_v the_o word_n thereof_o to_o humour_v his_o passion_n of_o pride_n and_o revenge_n then_o that_o all_o the_o primitive_a father_n and_o christian_n of_o the_o world_n do_v conspire_v to_o forsake_v the_o know_v true_a letter_n and_o clear_a meaning_n of_o god_n word_n or_o if_o all_o do_v not_o conspire_v in_o the_o apotasy_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o monument_n leave_v or_o mention_v make_v in_o record_n history_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o fidelity_n of_o the_o party_n that_o resist_v second_o this_o suppose_a change_n be_v prove_v incredible_a not_o only_o by_o the_o impossibility_n of_o a_o insensible_a change_n in_o a_o thing_n so_o remarkable_a and_o important_a as_o the_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o also_o by_o the_o impossibility_n that_o a_o change_n and_o corruption_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o the_o detriment_n of_o the_o wary_a laity_n temporal_a interest_n and_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n both_o of_o the_o laity_n and_o clergie_n liberty_n for_o when_o man_n resolve_v to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o narrow_a way_n which_o lead_v to_o heaven_n they_o be_v not_o so_o foolish_o wicked_a as_o to_o retire_v from_o the_o wide_a world_n into_o desert_n or_o monastery_n and_o to_o impose_v upon_o themselves_o or_o their_o follower_n a_o obligation_n or_o principle_n of_o a_o more_o devil_n strict_a course_n of_o life_n then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v forsake_v as_o daily_a experience_n do_v clear_o demonstrat_fw-la if_o protestancy_n therefore_o be_v the_o primitive_a and_o pure_a christian_a religion_n the_o fall_n from_o it_o to_o popery_n must_v have_v be_v rather_o condessend_v then_o contrary_a to_o sensuality_n and_o liberty_n and_o yet_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o its_o exception_n against_o popery_n be_v consider_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o they_o differ_v protestancy_n do_v favour_n liberty_n and_o vice_n popery_n do_v favour_n temperance_n and_o virtue_n we_o shall_v declare_v hereafter_o to_o what_o great_a crime_n and_o carlesness_n of_o life_n man_n be_v encourage_v by_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o predestination_n and_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o christ_n suffering_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n they_o apply_v not_o to_o themselves_o by_o imitation_n of_o his_o virtue_n and_o mortification_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o think_v it_o a_o diminution_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o a_o disrespect_n to_o his_o person_n that_o man_n endeavour_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o help_v themselves_o and_o to_o cooperat_fw-la with_o christ_n passion_n and_o upon_o thi●_n ground_n they_o raise_v their_o battery_n against_o indulgence_n purgatory_n ●●lgrimages_n prayer_n to_o saint_n confession_n of_o sin_n penance_n the_o three_o vow_n and_o the_o austerity_n of_o a_o religious_a life_n work_v of_o supererogation_n etc._n etc._n and_o censure_v catholic_n as_o guilty_a of_o superstition_n and_o folly_n for_o believe_v that_o though_o christ_n passion_n be_v infinite_o sufficient_a to_o redeem_v we_o from_o the_o guilt_n and_o penalty_n of_o sin_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_o and_o actua_o apply_v to_o actual_a sinner_n without_o their_o own_o concurrence_n good_a work_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o their_o pretence_n that_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o all_o they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o he_o have_v pray_v fast_v and_o give_v alm_n for_o all_o and_o so_o discharge_v man_n of_o all_o such_o christian-duty_n and_o devotion_n and_o as_o to_o other_o particular_n we_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o can_v the_o protestant_n clergy_n design_n be_v in_o allow_v priest_n marriage_n and_o a_o liberty_n to_o dissolve_v marriage_n change_v wife_n 648._o and_o husband_n in_o case_n of_o adultery_n departure_n infirmity_n by_o childbirth_n or_o otherwise_o but_o lust_n and_o sensual_a liberty_n contrary_a to_o the_o instition_n of_o matrimony_n and_o to_o the_o purity_n and_o practice_n of_o christianity_n which_o roman_a catholic_n observe_v from_o whence_o proceed_v their_o allow_v of_o eat_v of_o flesh_n and_o fish_n promiscuous_o on_o all_o day_n of_o the_o year_n but_o from_o gluttony_n their_o clergy_n denial_n of_o the_o pop_n superiority_n which_o their_o better_n in_o virtue_n birth_n and_o learning_n acknowledge_v but_o from_o want_n of_o humility_n and_o their_o place_n it_o in_o the_o temporal_a sovereign_n but_o from_o excess_n of_o flattery_n their_o dulness_n in_o confound_v the_o substance_n with_o the_o appearance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o from_o sensuality_n their_o denial_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o yet_o assert_v in_o themselves_o a_o uncontrolled_a authority_n but_o from_o pride_n and_o obstinacy_n their_o fond_a expression_n of_o their_o own_o prelatic_a reformation_n and_o doctrine_n but_o from_o want_n of_o christian_a modesty_n and_o from_o their_o forefathers_n the_o ancient_a heretic_n who_o presumption_n and_o obstinacy_n be_v never_o more_o manifest_o absurd_a nor_o more_o lega_o condemn_v at_o nice_a ephesius_n chalcedon_n or_o constantinople_n than_o the_o protestant_a tenet_n have_v be_v at_o trent_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o that_o will_v read_v the_o history_n of_o those_o counsel_n and_o compare_v the_o objection_n and_o exception_n make_v by_o arian_n nestorian_n and_o e●●tychians_n &_o e._n against_o the_o authority_n and_o decree_n whereby_o they_o
anxiety_n which_o i_o attribute_v more_o to_o religion_n then_o ignorance_n see_v also_o pelicanus_n a_o learned_a protestant_a writer_n his_o great_a praise_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o psalm_n in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a edition_n in_o praef_n in_o psalterium_fw-la a_o 1584._o see_v also_o doctor_n covell_n acknowledge_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o burges_n pag._n 94._o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n a_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o conclude_v pag._n 91._o that_o the_o most_o approve_a translation_n authorise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v that_o which_o come_v near_a to_o the_o vulgar_a and_o be_v common_o call_v the_o bishop_n bible_n and_o doctor_n whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o mr._n reynolds_n pag._n 141._o be_v please_v to_o moderate_a his_o former_a rail_n against_o our_o vulgar_a translation_n revew_v by_o st._n hierom_n at_o the_o request_n of_o st._n damasus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v st._n hierom_n i_o reverence_v damasus_n i_o commend_v and_o the_o work_n i_o confess_v to_o be_v godly_a and_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n the_o reason_n that_o move_v the_o protestant_n not_o to_o accept_v or_o acquiesce_v in_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o them-selve_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v because_o they_o will_v have_v as_o much_o liberty_n to_o reject_v the_o true_a letter_n as_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n their_o new_a doctrine_n be_v condemn_v by_o both_o for_o have_v they_o grant_v that_o any_o one_o ancient_a translation_n be_v authentik_a how_o can_v luther_n have_v have_v the_o impudence_n to_o thrust_v into_o the_o text_n the_o word_n 87._o alone_o to_o assert_v his_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n rom._n 3.28_o or_o how_o can_v he_o omit_v 2._o petr._n 1._o where_o it_o be_v say_v wherefore_o brethren_n labour_v the_o more_o that_o by_o good_a work_n you_o may_v make_v sure_a your_o vocation_n this_o particle_n by_o good_a work_n how_o can_v zuinglius_fw-la have_v translate_v for_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o signify_v my_o body_n to_o maintain_v his_o figurative_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o cry_v down_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n and_o so_o of_o all_o other_o protestant_n translation_n whereof_o every_o one_o have_v word_n add_v and_o omit_v in_o the_o text_n which_o can_v be_v justify_v or_o excuse_v by_o any_o ancient_a copy_n of_o scripture_n extant_a in_o any_o language_n whatsoever_o no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o lutheran_n reject_v the_o calvinist_n translation_n and_o the_o calvinist_n that_o of_o lutheran_n the_o transtranslation_n translation_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o basile_n be_v reprove_v by_o beza_n who_o say_v respon_n ad_fw-la defence_n cast._n that_o it_o be_v in_o many_o place_n wicked_a and_o altogether_o differ_v from_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o molinaeus_n in_fw-la testam_fw-la part_n 20.30_o etc._n etc._n say_v of_o beza_n that_o in_o his_o translation_n he_o actua_o change_v the_o text_n and_o of_o calvin_n in_o translation_n testam_fw-la nov_fw-mi fol._n 110._o that_o he_o make_v the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o leap_v up_o and_o down_o and_o that_o he_o use_v violence_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o beside_o this_o add_v to_o the_o text._n as_o for_o the_o english_a translation_n we_o have_v king_n james_n his_o true_a censure_n in_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o conference_n before_o his_o majesty_n pag._n 46._o that_o he_o can_v never_o yet_o see_v a_o bible_n well_o translate_v into_o english_a his_o royal_a judgement_n be_v confirm_v by_o mr._n carlisle_n of_o christ_n dessent_fw-la into_o hell_n pag._n 116._o where_o he_o say_v of_o the_o english_a translator_n that_o they_o have_v deprave_v the_o sense_n obscure_v the_o truth_n and_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a that_o in_o many_o place_n they_o do_v detort_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o right_a sense_n etc._n etc._n the_o minister_n of_o lincoln_n diocese_n in_o their_o abridgement_n of_o a_o book_n deliver_v to_o his_o majesty_n the_o first_o of_o december_n pag._n 11._o &_o seq_n say_v that_o the_o english_a translation_n take_v away_o from_o the_o text_n add_v to_o the_o text_n and_o that_o somtym_n to_o the_o change_n or_o obscure_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o mr._n burg●s_v in_o his_o apology_n sect_n 6._o say_v how_o shall_v i_o approve_v under_o my_o hand_n a_o translation_n which_o have_v many_o omission_n many_o addition_n be_v somtym_n senseless_a somtym_v contrary_a other_o precise_a and_o learned_a protestant_n in_o a_o treatise_n entitle_v a_o petition_n direct_v to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 76._o say_v our_o translation_n of_o the_o psalm_n comprise_v in_o our_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n do_v in_o addition_n subtraction_n and_o alteration_n differ_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o 200._o place_n at_o least_o and_o make_v this_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o scruple_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n and_o these_o corruption_n be_v so_o undeniable_a that_o dr._n whitaker_n have_v nothing_o to_o answer_v to_o dr._n reynolds_n pag._n 255._o who_o object_v they_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o these_o word_n what_o mr._n carlisle_n with_o some_o other_o have_v write_v against_o some_o place_n translate_v in_o our_o bibles_n make_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n i_o have_v not_o say_v otherwise_o but_o that_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v amend_v these_o corruption_n in_o the_o english_a protestant_a bibles_n be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o notorious_a that_o doctor_n gregory_n martin_n compose_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o they_o and_o therein_o discover_v the_o fraud_n whereby_o the_o translator_n pretend_v to_o excuse_v they_o somtym_v they_o recur_v to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n and_o when_o that_o speak_v against_o their_o new_a doctrine_n and_o translation_n then_o to_o the_o greeck_n when_o that_o favour_v they_o not_o to_o some_o copy_n acknowledge_v by_o them-selve_n to_o be_v corrupt_v and_o of_o no_o credit_n and_o when_o that_o no_o copy_n at_o all_o can_v be_v find_v out_o to_o cloak_v their_o corruption_n the_o book_n or_o chapter_n of_o scripture_n that_o contradict_v they_o be_v declare_v apocryphal_a and_o when_o that_o can_v be_v make_v probable_a they_o fall_v down_o right_a upon_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o write_v they_o and_o say_v they_o may_v and_o do_v err_v even_o after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o be_v not_o only_a luther_n shift_n all_o protestant_n follow_v their_o first_o reformer_n in_o this_o point_n have_v the_o same_o necessity_n impose_v upon_o they_o by_o their_o own_o reformation_n and_o translation_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o know_a letter_n of_o scripture_n luther_n be_v tell_v by_o zuinglius_fw-la tom_n 2._o ad_fw-la luther_n l._n de_fw-fr sacram._n pag._n 412._o &_o seq_n thou_o do_v corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v see_v to_o be_v a_o manifest_a and_o common_a corrupter_n and_o perverter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n how_o much_o be_v we_o ashamed_a of_o thou_o who_o have_v hitherto_o esteem_v thou_o beyond_o all_o measure_n and_o now_o prove_v thou_o to_o be_v such_o a_o man_n luther_n know_v all_o this_o to_o be_v true_a have_v no_o way_n leave_v to_o defend_v his_o impiety_n but_o by_o impudence_n prefer_v him-self_n and_o his_o own_o spirit_n before_o that_o of_o they_o who_o write_v the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o tom_n 5._o wittenberg_n a_o 1554._o fol._n 290._o &_o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la galat._n cap._n 1._o after_o the_o english_a translation_n fol._n 33._o &_o 34_o he_o say_v be_v it_o that_o the_o church_n austin_n and_o other_o doctor_n also_o peter_n paul_n yea_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v otherwise_o yet_o be_v my_o doctrine_n such_o as_o set_v forth_o god_n only_a glory_n etc._n etc._n peter_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n do_v live_v and_o teach_v extra_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o against_o st._n james_n his_o mention_v the_o sacrament_n of_o extreme_a unction_n de_fw-la capti_fw-la babyl_n cap._n the_o extreme_a unct_n in_o tom_n 2._o wittenberg_n fol._n 86._o but_o though_o this_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n i_o will_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o apostle_n by_o his_o authority_n to_o institute_v a_o sacrament_n this_o apertain_v to_o christ_n alone_o as_o though_o thas_o blessed_a apostle_n will_v publish_v a_o sacrament_n without_o warrant_n from_o christ._n see_v also_o what_o he_o say_v of_o moses_n his_o write_n tom_n 3._o wittenberg_n in_o psalm_n 45._o fol._n 432._o &_o 422._o &_o tom_n 3._o germ._n fol._n 40.41_o &_o in_o colloq_fw-la mensal_n germ._n fol._n 152._o &_o 153._o the_o century_n writer_n of_o magdeburg_n follow_v this_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n
holy_a doctor_n and_o then_o approve_v of_o by_o all_o the_o world_n and_o ever_o since_o accept_v and_o applaud_v in_o god_n church_n be_v defective_a or_o deceitful_a than_o a_o translation_n make_v since_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n by_o man_n not_o only_o engage_v in_o that_o new_a doctrine_n but_o maintain_v thereby_o and_o so_o addict_v to_o the_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n of_o this_o world_n as_o the_o first_o reformer_n and_o their_o successor_n the_o protestant_a clergy_n be_v know_v to_o be_v not_o only_o in_o england_n but_o in_o all_o other_o part_n of_o christendom_n let_v they_o be_v please_v also_o to_o consider_v whether_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n in_o these_o kingdom_n who_o in_o be_v of_o that_o judgement_n can_v have_v no_o motive_n but_o conscience_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o incapacity_n and_o penalty_n lay_v upon_o they_o for_o not_o conform_v to_o protestancy_n be_v not_o a_o more_o impartial_a and_o less_o to_o be_v suspect_v rule_n for_o any_o prudent_a person_n to_o follow_v than_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n reward_v and_o promote_v to_o the_o great_a employment_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n for_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n they_o profess_v and_o who_o will_v forfeit_v all_o their_o be_v if_o they_o declare_v them-selve_n contrary_a to_o protestancy_n this_o be_v as_o mature_o and_o impartial_o consider_v as_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n do_v require_v none_o will_v believe_v that_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n make_v by_o protestant_n be_v holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o our_o vulgata_fw-la in_o latin_a translate_v out_o of_o the_o true_a greeck_n and_o hebrew_n copy_n write_v first_o by_o a_o holy_a martyr_n and_o after_o revew_v by_o a_o st._n who_o sincerity_n and_o learning_n be_v sufficient_a to_o canonize_v his_o translation_n have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o most_o holy_a of_o itself_o and_o so_o declare_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1200._o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v protestant_a writer_n tell_v we_o that_o thei●_n translation_n be_v take_v immediate_o from_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n so_o be_v our_o vulgata_fw-la only_a with_o this_o difference_n that_o we_o be_v take_v from_o the_o fountain_n when_o they_o be_v clear_a and_o by_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n that_o know_v which_o be_v the_o crystal_n water_n and_o true_a copy_n but_o they_o be_v take_v from_o fountain_n of_o troubleed_n water_n by_o lewd_a and_o vicious_a person_n and_o after_o that_o the_o arian_n and_o other_o heretic_n have_v poison_v and_o corrupt_v they_o with_o their_o false_a and_o filthy_a doctrine_n thus_o much_o against_o the_o protestant_a letter_n of_o scripture_n now_o to_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n sect_n v._o the_o protestant_a interpretation_n be_v not_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o principal_a part_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o sense_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n together_o with_o the_o letter_n for_o as_o st._n hierom_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la galat._n say_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n not_o in_o the_o bark_n but_o in_o the_o sapp_n not_o in_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o root_n of_o the_o meaning_n so_o that_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o protestant_a translation_n to_o be_v true_a yet_o if_o we_o prove_v their_o interpretation_n false_a we_o demonstrat_fw-la they_o have_v no_o scripture_n nor_o the_o least_o pretext_n or_o colour_n for_o their_o reformation_n and_o first_o that_o the_o church_n receive_v together_o with_o the_o letter_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v as_o evident_a as_o it_o be_v that_o god_n will_v not_o speak_v word_n without_o sense_n or_o leave_v the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o to_o man_n who_o capacity_n reach_v not_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n therefore_o our_o learned_a adversary_n be_v oblige_v to_o confess_v that_o no_o man_n doubt_v 35._o but_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n not_o only_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o the_o right_n and_o native_a sense_n thereof_o the_o dispute_n therefore_o between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o church_n ever_o receive_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o whether_o that_o sense_n continue_v as_o well_o as_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o church_n and_o whether_o the_o interpretation_n of_o luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n hamond_n etc._n etc._n or_o of_o the_o prelaticks_n of_o england_n aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n because_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v suppose_v by_o all_o protestant_n to_o have_v be_v lose_v for_o many_o age_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o god_n be_v either_o so_o careless_a as_o to_o forget_v the_o ancient_a sense_n or_o so_o wicked_a as_o to_o forge_v a_o new_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o first_o it_o seem_v against_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o any_o christian_a congregation_n can_v be_v less_o careful_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n then_o of_o the_o letter_n because_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o which_o import_v most_o for_o preservation_n of_o the_o faith_n therefore_o if_o the_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v so_o watchful_a and_o diligent_a in_o all_o age_n as_o to_o find_v out_o and_o correct_v all_o heretical_a corruption_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o will_v neglect_v the_o same_o industry_n for_o preservation_n of_o the_o sense_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n word_n and_o if_o protestant_n think_v the_o letter_n be_v safe_a in_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o roman_n chatholick_n church_n from_o which_o they_o receive_v it_o how_o can_v they_o suspect_v the_o purity_n of_o that_o sense_n which_o be_v keep_v and_o deliver_v to_o they_o by_o the_o same_o church_n and_o authority_n and_o if_o god_n providence_n as_o they_o confess_v be_v engage_v in_o keep_v the_o leaf_n and_o letter_n of_o scripture_n from_o corruption_n sure_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o vnconcern_v for_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o substance_n as_o to_o permit_v it_o to_o perish_v beside_o it_o be_v much_o easy_a to_o keep_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n incorrupt_a and_o pure_a than_o the_o letter_n the_o letter_n be_v write_v only_o in_o paper_n or_o parchment_n the_o sense_n in_o the_o head_n and_o heart_n of_o the_o bishop_n doctor_n and_o people_n of_o the_o church_n a_o dash_n of_o a_o pen_n may_v alter_v the_o letter_n but_o can_v have_v access_n to_o the_o sense_n which_o lodge_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o head_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o precept_n of_o receive_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n but_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a way_n of_o salvation_n go_v not_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o elder_n for_o they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o their_o father_n and_o of_o they_o thou_o shall_v learn_v understanding_n and_o to_o answer_v in_o the_o time_n of_o need_n eccles._n 8.8_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n observe_v not_o this_o they_o go_v to_o no_o precedent_a church_n nor_o father_n for_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o the_o word_n of_o jeremy_n 18.15_o may_v be_v literal_o apply_v to_o they_o they_o have_v stumble_v from_o the_o ancient_a way_n to_o walk_v in_o way_n not_o tread_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n ought_v to_o say_v and_o confess_v ingenious_o that_o of_o holy_a job_n 8.8_o jnquire_v therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o of_o the_o ancient_a generation_n and_o prepare_v thyself_o to_o search_v of_o their_o father_n for_o we_o be_v but_o yesterday_o and_o ought_v not_o intrude_v their_o own_o imagination_n as_o the_o true_a explanation_n of_o god_n word_n they_o do_v not_o imitat_fw-la st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n and_o st._n basil_n who_o as_o eusebius_n relate_v hist._n l._n 11._o cap._n 9_o do_v seek_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o from_o their_o own_o presumption_n but_o from_o the_o write_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o origen_n say_v tract_n in_o math._n 29._o that_o in_o our_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n nor_o believe_v otherwise_o but_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v by_o succession_n deliver_v to_o we_o nor_o that_o of_o tertulian_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr prescrip_n c._n 6._o what_o the_o apostle_n preach_v what_o christ_n reveal_v to_o they_o ought_v not_o be_v otherwise_o prove_v
then_o by_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v gloriari_fw-la protestant_n contemn_v all_o these_o rule_n and_o because_o there_o be_v never_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n that_o any_o of_o their_o reformer_n preach_v or_o them-selve_n now_o profess_v they_o be_v necessitate_v to_o except_v against_o all_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n and_o against_o the_o continual_a and_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n concern_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o scripture_n deliver_v to_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o will_v be_v judge_v therein_o by_o none_o but_o by_o them-selve_n and_o by_o their_o own_o fancy_n of_o scripture_n they_o all_o follow_v this_o rule_n of_o luther_n the_o first_o reformer_n which_o he_o lay_v as_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o protestant_a reformation_n the_o governor_n of_o church_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n sheep_n have_v indeed_o power_n to_o teach_v but_o the_o sheep_n must_v judge_n whether_o they_o propose_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o stranger_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o let_v pope_n bishop_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n decree_n order_n enact_v what_o they_o please_v we_o shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o we_o who_o be_v christ_n sheep_n and_o hear_v his_o voice_n will_v judge_n whether_o they_o propose_v thing_n true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o we_o and_o subscribe_v and_o obey_v to_o our_o sentence_n and_o censure_n luther_n tom_n 2._o wittemb_v cap._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la script_n fol._n 375._o and_o because_o b._n p_o jewel_n in_o his_o challenge_n think_v that_o none_o dare_v answer_v or_o accept_v it_o appeal_v to_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o first_o age_n and_o be_v thereupon_o immediate_o convict_v of_o hypocrisy_n and_o imposture_n he_o be_v grievous_o reprehend_v by_o his_o own_o prelatic_a brethren_n as_o injurious_a to_o him-self_n and_o as_o one_o who_o have_v give_v the_o papist_n too_o large_a a_o scope_n and_o after_o a_o manner_n spoil_v him-self_n and_o the_o church_n see_v doctor_n humphrey_n in_o jewel_n be_v life_n edit_n londin_n pag._n 212._o and_o the_o same_o also_o in_o fulk_n retentive_a against_o bristol_n pag._n 55._o ever_o since_o that_o foil_n the_o prelatik_n have_v be_v more_o wary_a and_o one_o of_o their_o great_a champion_n bilson_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n between_o christian_a subjection_n etc._n etc._n part_n 2._o pag._n 353._o say_v in_o plain_a term_n the_o people_n must_v be_v discerner_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v how_o contrary_a to_o luther_n reformation_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o father_n we_o may_v judge_n by_o these_o word_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o the_o oration_n wherein_o he_o excuse_v him-self_n for_o have_v be_v long_o absent_a from_o his_o flock_n and_o not_o exercise_v his_o function_n vos_fw-fr oves_fw-la nolite_fw-la pascere_fw-la pastor_n neque_fw-la super_fw-la terminos_fw-la eorum_fw-la elevamini_fw-la satis_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la vobis_fw-la si_fw-la recte_fw-la pascimini_fw-la nolite_fw-la judicare_fw-la iudices_fw-la nec_fw-la legem_fw-la feratis_fw-la legislatoribus_a etc._n etc._n now_o let_v any_o man_n who_o have_v common_a sense_n be_v judge_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o least_o degree_n probable_a that_o not_o only_o the_o illiterate_a protestant_n but_o even_o their_o great_a doctor_n and_o their_o first_o apostle_n luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n etc._n etc._n shall_v know_v better_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o first_o age_n than_o they_o to_o who_o those_o of_o that_o age_n tell_v what_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o then_o the_o second_o which_o tell_v the_o three_o what_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o first_o and_o so_o from_o generation_n until_o luther_n and_o calvin_n tyme._n that_o every_o age_n give_v this_o favourable_a testimony_n to_o the_o subsequent_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o it_o deliver_v can_v not_o be_v deny_v otherwise_o none_o will_v have_v receive_v their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o their_o doctrine_n as_o divine_a whether_o they_o be_v sincere_a in_o deliver_v their_o testimony_n be_v the_o question_n and_o because_o none_o question_n it_o but_o luther_n calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o their_o follower_n until_o we_o see_v be_v ter_z evidence_n and_o a_o more_o clear_a cause_n of_o their_o reform_a principle_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n apostasy_n than_o their_o private_a spirit_n or_o luther_n and_o calvin_n new_a and_o extravagant_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n we_o dare_v not_o condemn_v the_o whole_a ancient_a visible_a and_o catholic_n church_n nor_o concur_v with_o its_o declare_a enemy_n in_o so_o rash_a a_o judgement_n as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n betray_v its_o trust_n and_o posterity_n which_o rash_a judgement_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n s._n athanasius_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr decretis_fw-la nicen._n synod_n contra_fw-la euseb._n ecce_fw-la nos_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la patribus_fw-la ad_fw-la patres_fw-la per_fw-la manus_fw-la traditam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la demonstravimus_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la o_fw-la novi_fw-la judaei_n caiphae_n silij_fw-la quos_fw-la tandem_fw-la nominum_fw-la vestrorum_fw-la potestis_fw-la ostendere_fw-la progenitores_fw-la s._n gregor_n nazian_n ep_n 2._o ab_fw-la chelid_n absconditam_fw-la post_fw-la christum_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la nobis_fw-la annunciant_fw-la rem_fw-la lacrymis_fw-la dignam_fw-la si_fw-la enim_fw-la triginta_fw-la his_fw-la annis_fw-la fides_fw-la originem_fw-la habuit_fw-la cum_fw-la quadringenti_fw-la now_o 1600._o fere_n anni_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la fluxerint_fw-la quo_fw-la christus_fw-la palam_fw-la conspectus_fw-la est_fw-la inane_fw-la tanto_fw-la tempore_fw-la fuit_fw-la evangelium_fw-la inanis_fw-la etiam_fw-la fides_fw-la nostra_fw-la &_o martyr_n quidem_fw-la frustra_fw-la martyrium_fw-la subierunt_fw-la frustra_fw-la etiam_fw-la tale_n tantique_fw-la antistites_fw-la populo_fw-la praefuerunt_fw-la st._n august_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 14._o say_v to_o the_o manichee_n what_o we_o may_v to_o the_o protestant_a reformer_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la &_o tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la estis_fw-la &_o tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la &_o tam_fw-la novi_fw-la nemini_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quoniam_fw-la nihil_fw-la dignum_fw-la autoritate_fw-la proferetis_fw-la see_v therefore_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n have_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 1600._o year_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o visible_a christian_a church_n from_o age_n to_o age_n as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o god_n word_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v never_o accept_v of_o by_o any_o but_o condemn_v heretic_n and_o even_o in_o this_o last_o age_n be_v deliver_v but_o by_o a_o few_o turbulent_a and_o disagree_a person_n and_o obnoxious_a ●o_o many_o exception_n much_o diminish_v the_o credibility_n of_o their_o testimony_n it_o be_v at_o least_o 16._o to_o one_o not_o only_o in_o the_o number_n but_o also_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o witness_n that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a and_o the_o protestant_n false_a and_o by_o consequence_n the_o protestant_n have_v no_o scripture_n to_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o roman_a catholic_n sect_n vi_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o the_o ministry_n and_o mission_n of_o their_o clergy_n in_o the_o miracle_n of_o their_o church_n in_o the_o holiness_n and_o honesty_n of_o their_o reformer_n albeit_o god_n be_v able_a to_o call_v justify_v and_o confirm_v the_o elect_a without_o any_o mediate_v mean_n yet_o as_o protestant_n confess_v he_o be_v please_v not_o to_o accomplish_v the_o same_o otherwise_o then_o in_o and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o church_n therefore_o s._n paul_n tell_v we_o ephes._n 4.11.12.13_o that_o christ_n have_v place_v in_o his_o church_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o continue_v to_o the_o consummation_n of_o saint_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n the_o chief_a of_o these_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v the_o bishop_n unto_o who_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n testify_v it_o belong_v to_o govern_v god_n church_n act._n c._n 2d_o these_o bishop_n must_v succeed_v not_o only_o in_o doctrine_n but_o in_o character_n to_o the_o apostle_n which_o character_n be_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n or_o vocation_n discern_v and_o receive_v by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n 1._o tim._n 4._o but_o because_o luther_n be_v only_o a_o single_a priest_n and_o calvin_n as_o most_o say_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o priest_n and_o that_o both_o despair_v of_o episcopal_n and_o priestly_a succession_n they_o resolve_v to_o remedy_v that_o want_n by_o say_v that_o the_o character_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o distinct_a from_o that_o of_o baptism_n and_o whereas_o luther_n ordination_n or_o ordinary_a vocation_n in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o that_o church_n and_o not_o his_o new_a
by_o faith_n in_o christ_n not_o by_o good_a work_n which_o they_o in_o no_o wise_a do_v affect_v we_o catholic_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v no_o evill-liver_n in_o our_o church_n but_o this_o we_o may_v say_v with_o truth_n and_o i_o hope_v without_o offence_n that_o the_o difference_n between_o protestant_a and_o catholic_n ●●●ll-livers_n be_v that_o when_o protestant_n sin_n they_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o be_v encourage_v unto_o by_o their_o justify_v faith_n and_o the_o other_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o when_o catholic_n sin_n they_o go_v against_o the_o know_a tenet_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o profession_n even_o our_o pardon_n and_o jndulgence_n however_o so_o plenary_a be_v so_o far_o from_o encourage_v we_o to_o a_o continuance_n or_o relapse_n of_o sin_v that_o they_o involve_v as_o a_o precedent_n and_o necessary_a condition_n a_o serious_a and_o sincere_a repentance_n of_o our_o former_a offence_n and_o afirm_v purpose_n and_o resolution_n of_o never_o return_v to_o the_o like_a crime_n and_o after_o all_o be_v do_v we_o pretend_v to_o no_o such_o undoubted_a certainty_n of_o be_v pardon_v either_o by_o confession_n or_o indulgence_n because_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a whether_o we_o do_v all_o as_o we_o ought_v as_o protestant_n presume_v to_o have_v of_o their_o justification_n and_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n the_o nature_n of_o this_o justify_v faith_n and_o of_o other_o protestant_a principle_n consider_v we_o catholic_n have_v reason_n to_o thank_v god_n that_o the_o prudence_n ●f_n the_o prince_n and_o moderation_n of_o his_o minister_n be_v so_o extraordinary_a that_o it_o keep_v the_o indiscreed_a zeal_n of_o a_o multitude_n so_o strange_o principled_a if_o not_o as_o much_o with_o in_o the_o limit_n of_o christianity_n and_o civility_n towards_o their_o fellow_n subject_n as_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n be_v not_o altogether_o so_o destructive_a as_o the_o presbiterian_o and_o other_o endeavour_n until_o the_o generality_n of_o these_o nation_n reflect_v upon_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n and_o upon_o their_o own_o mistake_n in_o prefer_v the_o mad_a fancy_n of_o a_o few_o dissolute_a friar_n concern_v the_o nature_n of_o christian_a faith_n before_o the_o constant_a testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n we_o can_v expect_v that_o they_o who_o govern_v so_o mistake_v a_o multitude_n can_v make_v justice_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o public_a decree_n which_o depend_v of_o the_o concurrence_n and_o acceptance_n of_o man_n who_o great_a care_n be_v to_o promote_v protestancy_n and_o persecute_v popery_n sect_n ix_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o the_o consistency_n of_o christian_a faith_n humility_n charity_n peace_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n with_o their_o make_a scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o private_a person_n or_o fallible_a synod_n or_o fancy_v general_a counsel_n compose_v of_o all_o discenting_a christian_a church_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o religion_n how_o every_o protestant_n be_v a_o pope_n and_o how_o much_o also_o they_o be_v oversee_v in_o make_v the_o 39_o article_n or_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n a_o distinctive_a sign_n of_o loyalty_n to_o our_o protestant_a king_n lvther_o zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n cranmer_n and_o all_o other_o that_o pretend_v to_o reform_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n see_v they_o can_v not_o prove_v their_o new_a religion_n or_o reformation_n by_o testimony_n from_o antiquity_n or_o by_o probability_n of_o reason_n be_v enforce_v to_o imitat_fw-la the_o example_n of_o all_o heretic_n who_o as_o s._n austin_n say_v l._n 1._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 3._o endeavour_v to_o defend_v their_o fall_n and_o deceitful_a opinion_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n if_o on_o shall_v ask_v any_o heretic_n say_v that_o ancient_a father_n vincentius_n lyr_n l._n 1._o cons_n haer._n c._n 35._o from_o whence_o do_v you_o prove_v from_o whence_o do_v you_o teach_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o forsake_v the_o universal_a and_o ancient_a faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n present_o he_o answer_v scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v write_v and_o forthwith_o he_o prepare_v a_o thousand_o testimony_n a_o thousand_o example_n a_o thousand_o authority_n from_o the_o law_n from_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o prophet_n this_o shift_n be_v so_o ordinary_a and_o notorious_a that_o luther_n him-self_n postill_a wittenberg_n in_o 2._o con_v 8._o dom._n post_n trin._n fol._n 118._o dom._n post_n trin._n fol._n 118._o affirm_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n because_o heretic_n be_v accustom_v to_o appeal_v to_o that_o book_n neither_o do_v there_o arise_v at_o any_o time_n any_o heresy_n so_o pestiferous_a and_o so_o foolish_a which_o do_v not_o endeavour_v to_o hide_v itself_o under_o the_o veil_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n etc._n etc._n find_v nothing_o to_o say_v for_o them-selve_n either_o in_o history_n or_o father_n and_o see_v tradition_n so_o clear_o bend_v against_o they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o name_v as_o much_o as_o on_o parish_n or_o person_n which_o ever_o profess_v their_o protestant_n doctrine_n they_o appeal_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n propose_v by_o the_o visible_a and_o catholic_n church_n and_o coun●●ls_n to_o their_o own_o canon_n and_o translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o from_o that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n have_v follow_v for_o 1500._o year_n to_o that_o which_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n temporal_a interest_n or_o fallacious_a reason_n di●●●ted_v to_o them-selve_n and_o so_o do_v other_o that_o follow_v their_o example_n make_v every_o private_a protestant_n or_o at_o least_o every_o reform_a congregation_n judge_n of_o scripture_n church_n counsel_n and_o father_n in_o so_o much_o that_o luther_n tom_n 2._o wittenberg_n cap._n de_fw-fr sacram._n fol._n 375._o set_v down_o this_o rule_n for_o all_o protestant_n to_o be_v direct_v 〈◊〉_d the_o governor_n of_o church_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n sheep_n 〈◊〉_d indeed_o power_n to_o teach_v but_o the_o sheep_n must_v judge_v wh●●●er_o they_o propose_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d of_o stranger_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o let_v pope_n bishop_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n decree_n order_n enact_v what_o they_o please_v we_o shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o we_o who_o be_v christ_n sheep_n and_o hear_v his_o voice_n will_v judge_v whether_o they_o propose_v thing_n true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o we_o and_o subscribe_v and_o obey_v our_o sentence_n and_o censure_n calvin_n though_o contrary_a to_o luth●●_n in_o many_o other_o thing_n yet_o in_o this_o do_v agree_v as_o be_v the_o ground_n whereupon_o all_o protestant_n reformation_n must_v rely_v in_o his_o lib._n 4._o institut_n cap._n 9_o §_o 8._o he_o say_v the_o definition_n of_o counsel_n must_v be_v examine_v by_o scripture_n and_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o his_o rule_n and_o spirit_n the_o same_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n print_v by_o authority_n 1633._o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v pag._n 103._o authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o every_o member_n of_o sound_a judgement_n in_o the_o same_o to_o judge_v controversy_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v not_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o our_o church_n but_o also_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o godly_a brethren_n in_o foreign_a nation_n and_o by_o mr._n bilson_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n etc._n etc._n part_n 2._o pag._n 353._o the_o people_n must_v be_v discerner_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v how_o inconsistent_a this_o doctrine_n be_v with_o christian_a faith_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o pretend_a fallibility_n and_o fall_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o all_o protestant_n do_v suppose_v and_o must_v maintain_v to_o make_v good_a the_o necessity_n and_o lawfullness_n of_o their_o own_o interpretation_n and_o reformation_n for_o if_o the_o roman_n catholik_n and_o ever_o visible_a church_n may_v and_o from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v err_v as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n declare_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n no_o reform_v congregation_n whether_o lutheran_n presbiterian_a or_o prelatic_a can_v have_v infallible_a certainty_n but_o that_o them-selve_n have_v fall_v into_o as_o great_a error_n as_o those_o which_o they_o have_v pretend_v to_o reform_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o reform_a doctrine_n they_o can_v not_o pretend_v to_o christianity_n of_o faith_n that_o involve_v a_o assurance_n of_o truth_n which_o assurance_n be_v impossible_a if_o that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v mistake_v in_o its_o proposal_n so_o that_o christianity_n of_o faith_n include_v
counterfeit_v must_v needs_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n proceed_v from_o want_n of_o christianity_n especial_o when_o they_o see_v that_o other_o as_o learned_a cautious_a and_o conscientious_a as_o them-selve_n after_o weigh_v all_o objection_n and_o circumstance_n submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o these_o sign_n for_o make_v the_o roman_n catholic_n authority_n authentical_o divine_a and_o that_o we_o believe_v what_o be_v propose_v with_o out_o the_o least_o suspicion_n or_o fear_n either_o of_o fraud_n or_o frailty_n in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n counsel_n which_o be_v the_o proposer_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n beside_o if_o protestant_n do_v consider_v the_o nature_n of_o veracity_n and_o god_n providence_n veracity_n they_o will_v never_o doubt_v of_o the_o application_n of_o his_o power_n to_o preserve_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n from_o error_n see_v it_o have_v so_o many_o sign_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o ministry_n as_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n succession_n and_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o doctor_n miracle_n unity_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n for_o veracity_n as_o aristotle_n and_o all_o philosopher_n define_v it_o be_v a_o virtue_n incline_v to_o speak_v truth_n and_o he_o be_v not_o incline_v to_o speak_v truth_n that_o countenance_v falsehood_n in_o so_o particular_a a_o manner_n as_o god_n do_v the_o doctrine_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n a_o king_n that_o may_v if_o he_o will_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o hinder_v his_o ambassador_n and_o minister_n or_o any_o other_o person_n from_o abuse_v other_o prince_n or_o his_o own_o subject_n by_o their_o speak_n or_o command_v in_o his_o majesty_n name_n or_o at_o least_o in_o speak_v otherwise_o then_o he_o real_o intend_v they_o shall_v and_o have_v prescribe_v by_o his_o commission_n or_o instruction_n such_o a_o king_n i_o say_v be_v not_o incline_v to_o speak_v truth_n because_o he_o willing_o permit_v his_o officer_n or_o other_o that_o pretend_v to_o speak_v in_o his_o name_n or_o real_o do_v speak_v by_o his_o order_n to_o utter_v falsehood_n and_o misinterpret_v his_o word_n and_o meaning_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o may_v easy_o prevent_v that_o fraud_n and_o frailty_n and_o reap_v no_o benefit_n by_o either_o a_o evident_a argument_n that_o he_o be_v not_o aver_v to_o such_o false_a practice_n no_o protestant_a doubt_n but_o that_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n speak_v true_o the_o king_n mind_n and_o sense_n when_o he_o pursue_v his_o majesty_n speech_n in_o parliament_n in_o his_o royal_a presence_n and_o hear_v and_o to_o think_v otherwise_o will_v be_v not_o only_o to_o tax_v my_o lord_n chancellor_n with_o folly_n but_o the_o king_n with_o a_o inclination_n to_o falsehood_n and_o a_o fault_n unbeseeming_a the_o dignity_n of_o a_o prince_n the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o country_n father_n as_o also_o the_o sincerity_n and_o veracity_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n protestant_n see_v therefore_o god_n be_v as_o much_o incline_v to_o speak_v truth_n as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v to_o love_v itself_o for_o god_n be_v truth_n by_o essence_n if_o it_o be_v against_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o prince_n and_o against_o the_o nature_n of_o human_a veracity_n and_o honesty_n which_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o the_o divine_a to_o permit_v falsehood_n in_o minister_n of_o state_n or_o in_o servant_n send_v but_o of_o ordinary_a errand_n when_o their_o master_n can_v easy_o prevent_v it_o how_o much_o more_o repugnant_a must_v it_o be_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o to_o his_o divine_a veracity_n to_o permit_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o his_o own_o presence_n name_n and_o hear_v tell_v lie_n and_o disguise_v they_o and_o itself_o with_o so_o probable_a and_o plausible_a sign_n of_o his_o divine_a truth_n and_o commission_n as_o to_o seal_v its_o doctrine_n with_o mark_n and_o miracle_n so_o undeniable_o supernatural_a that_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n acknowledge_v they_o be_v and_o can_v only_o bewrought_v by_o god_n power_n light_a can_v as_o little_a concur_v to_o produce_v darkness_n as_o truth_n to_o favour_n falsehood_n even_o man_n that_o love_v truth_n hate_v to_o hear_v other_o tell_v lie_n and_o do_v contradict_v untruth_n if_o them-selve_n be_v present_a and_o quote_v for_o author_n of_o the_o story_n they_o will_v not_o entertain_v servant_n give_v to_o that_o vice_n nor_o permit_v they_o wear_v their_o livery_n much_o less_o employ_v they_o in_o matter_n of_o concern_v wherein_o they_o may_v abuse_v their_o master_n word_n and_o prejudice_n his_o friend_n or_o tenant_n can_v protestant_n then_o imagine_v that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o permit_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o wear_v his_o livery_n and_o his_o authority_n but_o that_o he_o do_v promote_v the_o story_n and_o lie_v of_o that_o church_n in_o case_n its_o doctrine_n be_v false_o for_o the_o space_n of_o so_o many_o age_n with_o so_o great_a sign_n and_o testimony_n of_o his_o divine_a approbation_n that_o the_o wise_a and_o wairy_a man_n of_o the_o world_n after_o much_o study_n and_o examination_n do_v and_o do_v still_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o other_o religion_n do_v they_o think_v that_o god_n be_v not_o as_o much_o concern_v in_o prevent_a fraud_n fault_n and_o frailty_n in_o his_o minister_n and_o messenger_n as_o temporal_a prince_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o credit_n and_o truth_n of_o they_o wherefore_o if_o protestant_n judge_v it_o a_o breach_n of_o faith_n or_o want_v of_o truth_n and_o worth_n in_o a_o temporal_a prince_n not_o to_o endeavour_v to_o the_o utmost_a of_o his_o power_n that_o his_o minister_n and_o messenger_n deceive_v not_o his_o subject_n and_o ally_n by_o mistake_v or_o misapply_v his_o command_n or_o demand_n they_o can_v not_o but_o see_v the_o absurdity_n of_o believe_v that_o god_n do_v permit_v minister_n and_o messenger_n so_o supernatura_o qualify_v as_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v to_o err_v in_o propose_v his_o revelation_n unto_o all_o man_n kind_a his_o veracity_n be_v as_o high_o concern_v in_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o proposer_n as_o his_o power_n make_v he_o capable_a of_o prevent_v their_o human_a mistake_n and_o of_o confound_v the_o devil_n be_v malice_n but_o protestant_n have_v find_v out_o a_o new_a device_n confute_v and_o defence_n of_o their_o distinction_n they_o grant_v it_o be_v against_o god_n veracity_n to_o permit_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o err_v in_o propose_v the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v such_o article_n as_o protestant_n fancy_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n which_o be_v say_v they_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n some_o add_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n hitherto_o we_o can_v never_o obtain_v from_o they_o a_o more_o exact_a cathalogue_n of_o their_o protestant_a fundamental_o as_o for_o the_o other_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n 〈◊〉_d and_o propose_v as_o divine_a protestant_n think_v they_o may_v be_v deny_v and_o question_v without_o any_o offence_n to_o god_n denial_n or_o doubt_n of_o his_o veracity_n i_o can_v never_o hear_v any_o other_o reason_n or_o disparity_n for_o this_o their_o distinction_n but_o that_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v our_o salvation_n because_o it_o be_v the_o end_n propose_v by_o god_n in_o the_o institution_n and_o constitution_n of_o his_o church_n in_o such_o article_n therefore_o say_v they_o as_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n the_o church_n can_v but_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o proposal_n otherwise_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o and_o consequent_o not_o be_v save_v because_o we_o can_v not_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n reveal_v they_o but_o this_o their_o fundamental_a distinction_n still_o destroy_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a belief_n which_o be_v god_n veracity_n they_o make_v their_o own_o conveniency_n and_o not_o god_n veracity_n the_o motive_n of_o credit_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o truth_n itself_o or_o god_n inclination_n to_o speak_v truth_n can_v be_v great_a in_o on_o matter_n then_o other_o or_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o any_o article_n can_v be_v more_o fundamental_a or_o of_o great_a importance_n and_o necessity_n for_o salvation_n then_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v as_o much_o concern_v and_o as_o necessary_o incline_v to_o speak_v truth_n as_o well_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o church_n as_o if_o him-self_n speak_v immediate_o as_o well_o also_o in_o the_o least_o matter_n as_o in_o the_o great_a and_o by_o consequence_n he_o be_v as_o much_o engage_v to_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o error_n in_o on_o as_o in_o the_o other_o so_o that_o to_o believe_v the_o testimony_n or_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o matter_n
absolute_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v it_o in_o a_o matter_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a when_o equa_o propose_v by_o the_o same_o testimony_n and_o authority_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o god_n can_v speak_v by_o his_o church_n little_a untruth_n but_o not_o great_a untruth_n or_o that_o he_o may_v permit_v his_o veracity_n to_o be_v violate_v or_o vitiate_v in_o little_a but_o not_o in_o great_a matter_n as_o if_o forsooth_o the_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o matter_n it_o propose_v and_o not_o by_o the_o manner_n and_o supernatural_a mark_n of_o the_o proposal_n and_o by_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o speaker_n more_o over_o their_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n fallibility_n in_o not_o fundamental_a article_n have_v no_o solid_a ground_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a in_o say_v so_o and_o in_o its_o doctrine_n of_o fundamental_o if_o fallible_a none_o can_v prudent_o rely_v thereupon_o either_o in_o this_o or_o in_o any_o other_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o infallible_a than_o the_o protestant_a distinction_n of_o fundamental_o must_v be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o admit_v not_o any_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o article_n that_o be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o yet_o the_o same_o protestant_n say_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v also_o infallible_a in_o fundamental_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n and_o protestant_a church_n contradict_v on_o the_o other_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o fundamental_o therefore_o one_o of_o both_o must_v err_v and_o that_o on_o must_v be_v the_o protestant_n because_o it_o maintain_v that_o two_o church_n teach_v contradictory_n doctrine_n may_v both_o be_v infallible_a therein_o add_v herunto_o that_o if_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o or_o in_o all_o article_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n how_o can_v protestant_n excuse_v their_o reformation_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o a_o grievous_a sin_n and_o schism_n so_o uncharitable_a a_o breach_n be_v not_o justifiable_a by_o less_o than_o damnable_a or_o dangerous_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v forsake_v and_o what_o damnable_a doctrine_n or_o danger_n of_o damnation_n can_v or_o can_v be_v in_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v confess_o infallible_a in_o fundamental_o that_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n if_o therefore_o god_n veracity_n be_v deny_v even_o according_a to_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n and_o distinction_n by_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o fundamental_o it_o can_v be_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o the_o fundamental_a article_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v by_o the_o church_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o see_v the_o not_o fundamental_a article_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o same_o church_n and_o testimony_n and_o by_o consequence_n as_o sufficient_o as_o the_o fundamental_a protestant_n must_v grant_v that_o god_n veracity_n be_v no_o less_o deny_v by_o maintain_v the_o fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o not_o fundamental_o then_o in_o fundamental_o so_o that_o they_o must_v either_o acknowledge_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o article_n and_o matter_n of_o faith_n whether_o absolute_o necessary_a or_o not_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n or_o deny_v god_n veracity_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_a belief_n sect_n xiii_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v and_o prove_v that_o neither_o the_o protestant_n faith_n nor_o the_o faith_n late_o assert_v in_o a_o book_n call_v sure_a foot_n in_o christianity_n be_v christian_a belief_n where_o also_o be_v treat_v of_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n not_o the_o ma●●er_n believe_v but_o the_o motive_n and_o manner_n of_o believe_v make_v a_o belief_n christian_n there_o may_v be_v a_o historical_a or_o imaginary_a faith_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o divine_a and_o real_a that_o be_v man_n may_v believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o christianity_n 〈◊〉_d they_o believe_v the_o roman_n history_n and_o fancy_n that_o such_o a_o belief_n be_v not_o human_a but_o divine_a this_o we_o maintain_v to_o be_v the_o protestant_n case_n and_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o divine_a revelation_n but_o upon_o human_a persuasion_n and_o upon_o a_o imaginary_a evidence_n of_o god_n revelation_n they_o assent_n not_o to_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o to_o any_o other_o because_o god_n reveal_v it_o but_o because_o they_o think_v it_o undeniable_o evident_a either_o by_o the_o public_a confession_n of_o all_o christian_n or_o by_o the_o private_a suggestion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n or_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o natural_a reason_n or_o by_o their_o pretend_a cleverness_n of_o scripture_n that_o god_n reveal_v such_o mystery_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o for_o the_o article_n or_o fundamental_o of_o their_o reformation_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o evidence_n whereupon_o they_o build_v their_o faith_n the_o protestant_a sect_n be_v frame_v and_o divide_v into_o prelaticks_n who_o motive_n and_o evidence_n be_v the_o concurrence_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o their_o fundamental_o of_o christianity_n and_o into_o fanatik_n among_o who_o we_o include_v presbiterian_o &c._n &c._n who_o rely_v upon_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o spirit_n and_o the_o cleverness_n of_o scripture_n and_o into_o socinian_o who_o make_v evident_a reason_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o religion_n etc._n etc._n that_o these_o protestant_a persuasion_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o divine_a revelation_n or_o upon_o god_n authority_n and_o veracity_n we_o prove_v because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v a_o authority_n the_o motive_n of_o our_o belief_n unless_o we_o believe_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v equa_o propose_v and_o deliver_v to_o we_o as_o depend_v of_o and_o assert_v by_o that_o authority_n st._n austin_n say_v none_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n matthew_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o do_v likewise_o believe_v that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v both_o deliver_v as_o god_n word_n by_o the_o same_o authority_n the_o same_o testimony_n and_o the_o same_o visible_a church_n which_o deliver_v to_o the_o first_o protestant_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n deliver_v also_o to_o they_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o they_o or_o their_o follower_n can_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v any_o other_o testimony_n for_o the_o engagement_n of_o god_n veracity_n in_o certify_v they_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o article_n they_o retain_v but_o the_o same_o testimony_n which_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o article_n they_o reject_v therefore_o the_o reality_n and_o divinity_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v equal_o testify_v and_o applicable_a by_o on_o and_o the_o same_o testimony_n to_o both_o article_n aswell_o to_o the_o retain_v as_o to_o the_o reject_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o protestant_n can_v believe_v those_o they_o reta●●●_n move_v thereunto_o by_o god_n veracity_n or_o for_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n see_v the_o same_o veracity_n and_o revelation_n be_v equal_o and_o as_o clear_o apply_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n to_o the_o other_o article_n which_o they_o reject_v as_o not_o reveal_v if_o you_o ask_v a_o learned_a protestant_n why_o do_v he_o believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o incarnation_n he_o will_v answer_v as_o all_o heretic_n ever_o do_v aswell_o as_o catholic_n because_o god_n reveal_v it_o but_o if_o you_o inquire_v further_o why_o do_v he_o believe_v that_o god_n reveal_v it_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o because_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o subsect_v i._n i_o be_o right_o sorry_a to_o number_v among_o protestant_n and_o manichee_n who_o hold_v also_o this_o error_n of_o believe_v nothing_o which_o they_o do_v not_o fancy_v to_o be_v self_n evident_a the_o author_n of_o a_o book_n call_v sure_a foot_n in_o christianity_n who_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o self_n evident_a by_o virtue_n forsooth_o of_o tradition_n that_o god_n reveal_v all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o roman_a catholic_n doctrine_n jt_n pity_n he_o stumble_v so_o irrecoverable_o at_o his_o very_a first_o step_n pretend_v to_o see_v so_o clear_o and_o tread_v so_o sure_o upon_o a_o plain_a ground_n have_v he_o be_v as_o wary_a in_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o principle_n as_o he_o be_v witty_a in_o deduce_v his_o conclusion_n i_o shall_v have_v follow_v he_o as_o a_o excellent_a guide_n but_o he_o strive_v to_o raise_v christian_a faith_n unto_o a_o great_a height_n of_o evidence_n than_o be_v consistent_a with_o its_o nature_n and_o with_o our_o merit_n and_o liberty_n or_o convenient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o god_n
protestant_n principle_n to_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o fraud_n and_o fortification_n wherewith_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n do_v disguise_v they_o and_o divert_v their_o flock_n from_o reflect_v upon_o those_o sad_a effect_n which_o they_o have_v wrought_v and_o must_v work_v wheresoever_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o religion_n of_o the_o sta●e_v a_o treatise_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n the_o three_o part_n contain_v a_o plain_a discovery_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n fraud_n and_o falsification_n whereby_o alone_o their_o doctrine_n be_v support_v and_o make_v credible_a the_o conscience_n and_o conveniency_n of_o restore_v or_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n demonstrate_v sect_n i._o that_o either_o the_o learned_a protestant_n or_o roman_a catholic_n clergy_n be_v cheat_n and_o how_o every_o illiterate_a protestant_n may_v easy_o discern_v by_o which_o of_o the_o two_o clergy_n he_o be_v cheat_v and_o therefore_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o examine_v so_o near_o a_o concern_n and_o to_o renounce_v the_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v cheat_v of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v so_o conspicuous_a and_o manifest_a by_o such_o eminent_a and_o visible_a mark_n christ_n may_v well_o forbid_v the_o faithful_a to_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n for_o that_o their_o conventicle_n 〈◊〉_d never_o be_v mistake_v for_o the_o whole_a or_o even_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n unless_o man_n ●ill_v be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o take_v their_o ●are_a word_n when_o they_o say_v hic_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la aut_fw-la illic_fw-la whereas_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v innocent_o mistake_v christ_n command_n have_v not_o be_v obligatory_a for_o in_o such_o ●_o case_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v rather_o in_o one_o church_n then_o other_o see_v each_o church_n have_v reason_n sufficient_a to_o excuse_v learned_a party_n from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v command_v we_o to_o believe_v on_o congregation_n of_o christian_n and_o not_o believe_v other_o that_o pretend_v also_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n without_o confirm_v the_o testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o that_o one_o congregation_n which_o he_o bid_v we_o believe_v and_o prefer_v before_o the_o rest_n with_o such_o clear_a sign_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o evident_a mark_n of_o divine_a authority_n that_o the_o other_o compare_v therewith_o can_v have_v no_o probability_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v grant_v 1._o that_o the_o catholics_n church_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v compose_v of_o all_o or_o any_o dissent_v congregation_n 2._o that_o the_o one_o only_a congregation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_n church_n can_v never_o be_v so_o eclipse_v but_o that_o it_o must_v appear_v much_o more_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n miracle_n conversion_n of_o nation_n and_o much_o more_o credible_a in_o its_o testimony_n than_o any_o other_o wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o either_o the_o learned_a protestant_n clergy_n or_o the_o catholic_a must_v be_v cheat_n see_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o evident_a and_o eminent_a sign_n and_o mark_n of_o god_n church_n can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o both_o or_o in_o any_o two_o congregation_n dissent_v in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o each_o of_o they_o make_v their_o illiterate_a flock_n believe_v that_o their_o own_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n whereupon_o the_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o his_o authority_n and_o veracity_n do_v clear_o shine_v no_o human_a art_n or_o industry_n if_o not_o born-out_a with_o more_o than_o ordinary_a and_o notorious_a impudency_n can_v pretend_v to_o discredit_v or_o darken_v the_o spendor_n of_o true_a miracle_n sanctity_n successi●●_n become_v master_n of_o the_o commerce_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v i_o hope_v these_o consideration_n will_v invite_v and_o incite_v they_o to_o examine_v which_o of_o both_o the_o clergy_n the_o roman_n catholic_n that_o petition_n for_o ●r_o the_o prelatic_a protestant_n that_o oppose_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v the_o cheat_n and_o that_o they_o may_v find_v it_o out_o without_o much_o trouble_n i_o have_v thought_n sit_v to_o let_v they_o know_v there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o which_o have_v not_o be_v handle_v in_o english_a and_o argue_v to_o the_o full_a on_o both_o side_n now_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o dispute_n be_v this_o whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v roman_n catholic_n or_o rather_o protestant_n in_o the_o controvert_v point_n as_o pray_v to_o saint_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n worship_n of_o image_n the_o canonical_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n each_o side_n quote_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n and_o father_n because_o the_o true_a doctrine_n have_v be_v preserve_v and_o record_v in_o these_o write_n let_v he_o therefore_o that_o doubt_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o text_n and_o of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o he_o that_o quote_v it_o compare_v the_o author_n word_n with_o the_o 〈…〉_z he_o will_v infallible_o find_v out_o who_o be_v the_o cheat._n for_o he_o that_o do_v corrupt_v the_o word_n or_o change_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n and_o father_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o because_o i_o have_v spend_v some_o time_n both_o before_o and_o after_o my_o conversion_n to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o examine_v the_o falsification_n and_o fraud_n of_o protestant_n and_o their_o objection_n against_o papist_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n i_o may_v speak_v with_o more_o assurance_n than_o other_o who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o experience_n and_o do_v protest_v that_o i_o never_o think_v it_o possible_a before_o i_o find_v it_o be_v so_o the_o facto_fw-la that_o man_n pretend_v not_o only_a to_o the_o name_n of_o reform_a christianity_n but_o to_o the_o reality_n and_o sanctity_n of_o a_o episcopal_a character_n and_o charge_n of_o soul_n can_v be_v so_o unconsiderable_a unworthy_a and_o uncharitable_a in_o matter_n of_o eternity_n as_o i_o have_v ●ound_v the_o protestant_a writer_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o prelaticks_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n let_v any_o who_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v his_o conscience_n or_o curiosity_n peruse_v and_o compare_v either_o the_o book_n of_o jevel_n and_o harding_n or_o of_o bishop_n morton_n and_o father_n peson_n the_o nature_n or_o essence_n of_o a_o body_n or_o whether_o quantity_n be_v a_o thing_n distinct_a from_o that_o which_o we_o call_v a_o corporeal_a substance_n subsect_n i._o with_o what_o impudence_n and_o hypocrisy_n bishop_n jevell_v and_o other_o prelatic_a writer_n begin_v to_o maintain_v the_o protestancy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o how_o they_o be_v blame_v for_o appeal_n to_o antiquity_n by_o some_o of_o their_o own_o brethren_n to_o manifest_v the_o impudence_n and_o hypocrisy_n wherewith_o prelatic_a protestancy_n be_v broach_v and_o impose_v upon_o the_o laity_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n i_o will_v begin_v with_o bishop_n jevell_n famous_a challenge_n and_o his_o second_o that_o offer_v to_o maintain_v the_o primitive_a antiquity_n of_o protestancy_n and_o the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n his_o word_n be_v as_o i_o say_v before_o i_o say_v again_o i_o be_o content_a to_o yield_v and_o subscribe_v if_o any_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n or_o if_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v alive_a be_v able_a to_o bring_v one_o sufficient_a sentence_n out_o of_o any_o one_o catholic_n doctor_n or_o father_n or_o out_o of_o any_o old_a general_n council_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o space_n of_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n &c_n &c_n protest_v also_o that_o he_o affirm_v thus_o much_o not_o as_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o heat_n of_o zeal_n but_o as_o move_v with_o the_o simple_a truth_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v happy_o be_v deceive_v and_o think_v there_o be_v more_o weight_n on_o the_o other_o side_n then_o in_o conclusion_n will_v be_v find_v etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o break_v into_o this_o vehement_a apostrophe_n o_o merciful_a god_n who_o can_v think_v that_o there_o can_v be_v so_o much_o wilfulness_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n then_o exclaim_n o_o gregory_n o_o austin_n o_o hierom_n o_o chrysostom_n o_o leo_n o_o dionise_v o_o anacl●tus_n o_o calixtus_n o_o paul_n o_o christ_n if_o we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 626._o acknowledge_v the_o impossibility_n of_o defend_v the_o protestant_a religion_n by_o tradition_n or_o by_o any_o monument_n o●_n example_n from_o antiquity_n or_o by_o the_o say_n of_o father_n and_o counsel_n insomuch_o that_o archbishop_n whitgift_n in_o his_o defence_n against_o the_o reply_n of_o cartwright_n pag._n 472._o &_o 473._o do_v not_o stick_v to_o say_v that_o almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o learned_a writer_n of_o
best_a learned_a man_n i_o can_v get_v at_o that_o time_n martin_n harken_v good_a people_n what_o this_o man_n say_v he_o make_v a_o protestation_n on_o day_n to_o keep_v never_o a_o whit_n of_o that_o which_o he_o will_v swear_v the_o next_o day_n be_v this_o the_o part_n of_o a_o christian_n man_n but_o will_v you_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n king_n henry_n 8._o even_o then_o mean_v the_o lamentable_a change_n which_o after_o you_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o to_o further_a his_o pitiful_a proceed_n from_o the_o divorcement_n of_o his_o most_o lawful_a wife_n to_o the_o detestable_a depart_n from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n church_n this_o man_n make_v the_o foresay_a protestation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o let_v not_o to_o make_v two_o solemn_a oath_n quite_o contrary_a and_o why_o for_o otherwise_o by_o the_o law_n and_o canon_n of_o this_o realm_n he_o can_v not_o aspire_v to_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o canterbury_n cranmer_n i_o protest_v before_o you_o all_o there_o be_v never_o man_n come_v more_o unwilling_a to_o a_o bishopric_n than_o i_o do_v to_o that_o in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o king_n henry_n 8._o do_v send_v for_o i_o in_o post_n that_o i_o shall_v come_v over_o i_o prolong_v my_o journey_n by_o seven_o week_n at_o the_o least_o think_v that_o he_o will_v be_v forgetful_a of_o i_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n martin_n you_o declare_v well_o by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o king_n take_v you_o to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n who_o can_v not_o find_v within_o all_o his_o realm_n any_o man_n that_o will_v set_v forth_o his_o strange_a attempt_n but_o be_v enforce_v to_o send_v for_o you_o in_o post_n to_o come_v out_o of_o germany_n what_o may_v we_o conjecture_v thereby_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o compact_n between_o you_o be_v then_o queen_n an_n chaplyn_n and_o the_o king_n give_v i_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o canterbury_n and_o i_o will_v give_v you_o licence_n to_o live_v in_o adultery_n cranmer_n you_o say_v not_o true_a martin_n let_v your_o protestation_n join_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o talk_v give_v judgement_n 〈…〉_z of_o that_o your_o execrable_a perjury_n and_o his_o colour_a and_o too_o shameful_o suffer_v adultery_n 〈◊〉_d heresy_n and_o all_o mis-chief_a to_o this_o realm_n and_o now_o to_o answer_v 〈…〉_z of_o your_o oration_n wherein_o you_o bring_v 〈◊〉_d god_n 〈…〉_z you_o have_v it_o on_o your_o side_n and_o no_o man_n else_o and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n have_v devise_v a_o new_a scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n you_o play_v here_o in_o as_o the_o pharisee_n do_v which_o cry_v always_o verbum_fw-la domini_fw-la verbum_fw-la domini_fw-la when_o they_o mean_v nothing_o so_o this_o better_v not_o your_o case_n because_o you_o say_v you_o have_v god_n word_n for_o you_o for_o so_o basilides_n and_o photinus_n the_o heretic_n say_v that_o they_o have_v god_n word_n to_o maintain_v there_o heresy_n so_o nestorius_n so_o macedonius_n so_o pelagius_n and_o brief_o all_o the_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v yea_o and_o so_o the_o devil_n be_v father_n of_o heresy_n allege_v god_n word_n for_o he_o say_v scriptum_n est_fw-la it_o be_v write_v so_o say_v he_o to_o christ_n mitt●_n to_o deorsum_fw-la cast_v thyself_o downward_o say_v he_o and_o so_o teach_v you_o to_o cast_v all_o thing_n downward_o down_o with_o the_o sacrament_n down_o with_o muss_n down_o with_o the_o arm_n of_o christ_n and_o up_o with_o a_o lion_n and_o a_o dog_n down_o with_o abbey_n down_o with_o chauntrer_n down_o with_o hospital_n and_o college_n down_o with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n yea_o down_o with_o all_o that_o be_v good_a and_o godly_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o tell_v we_o not_o you_o have_v god_n word_n for_o god_n have_v give_v we_o by_o his_o word_n a_o mark_n to_o know_v that_o your_o teach_n proceed_v not_o of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n for_o christ_n say_v there_o shall_v come_v against_o his_o church_n raven_v wolf_n and_o false_a apostle_n and_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o what_o be_v their_o fruit_n st._n paul_n declare_v after_o the_o flesh_n they_o walk_v in_o concupiscence_n and_o uncleaness_n they_o contemn_v potentate_n etc._n etc._n whether_o these_o be_v not_o the_o fruit_n of_o your_o gospel_n i_o refer_v i_o to_o this_o worshipful_a audience_n whether_o the_o say_a gospel_n begin_v not_o with_o perjury_n proceed_v with_o adultery_n be_v maintain_v with_o heresy_n and_o end_v in_o conspiracy_n now_o sir_n two_o point_n more_o i_o mark_v in_o your_o rage_a discourse_n that_o you_o make_v here_o the_o one_o against_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o other_o against_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a touch_v the_o first_o you_o say_v you_o have_v god_n word_n with_o you_o yea_o and_o all_o doctor_n i_o will_v here_o ask_v but_o one_o question_n of_o you_o whether_o god_n word_n be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o and_o whether_o the_o doctor_n teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o them-selve_n or_o no_o for_o you_o mr._n cranmer_n have_v teach_v in_o this_o high_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n three_o contrary_a doctrine_n and_o you_o pretend_v in_o every_o one_o verbum_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n cranmer_n nay_o i_o teach_v but_o two_o contrary_a doctrine_n in_o the_o same_o martin_n what_o doctrine_n teach_v you_o when_o you_o condemn_v lambert_n the_o sacramentary_a in_o the_o king_n presence_n in_o whitehall_n cranmer_n i_o maintain_v then_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n martin_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o catholic_n and_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o how_o when_o king_n henry_n die_v do_v you_o not_o translate_v justus_n ionas_n book_n cranmer_n i_o do_v so_o martin_n then_o there_o you_o defend_v a_o other_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o same_o token_n that_o you_o send_v to_o lynne_n your_o printer_n that_o whereas_o in_o the_o first_o print_n there_o be_v a_o affirmative_a that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n body_n realy_a in_o the_o sacrament_n you_o send_v then_o to_o your_o printer_n to_o put_v in_o a_o not_o whereby_o it_o come_v miraculous_o to_o pass_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v clean_o convey_v out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n cranmer_n i_o remember_v there_o be_v two_o print_n of_o my_o say_a book_n but_o where_o the_o same_o not_o be_v put_v in_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v martin_n then_o from_o a_o lutheran_n you_o become_v a_o zwinglian_a which_o be_v the_o vile_a heresy_n of_o all_o in_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o for_o the_o same_o heresy_n you_o do_v help_v to_o burn_v lambert_n the_o sacramentary_a which_o you_o now_o call_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o god_n word_n cranmer_n i_o grant_v that_o then_o i_o believe_v otherwise_o then_o i_o do_v now_o and_o so_o i_o do_v until_o my_o lord_n of_o london_n doctor_n ridley_n do_v confer_v with_o i_o and_o by_o sundry_a persuasion_n and_o authority_n of_o doctor_n ●●●ew_v i_o quite_o from_o my_o opinion_n martin_n now_o sir_n as_o ●ouching_v the_o last_o part_n of_o your_o oration_n you_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n holiness_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n cranmer_n i_o do_v so_o martin_n who_o say_v you_o 〈…〉_z head_n cranmer_n christ._n martin_n but_o who_o have_v christ_n 〈◊〉_d here_o in_o earth_n his_o vic●●_n and_o head_n of_o his_o church_n cranmer_n no_o body_n martin_n ah_o why_o ●ould_v you_o not_o king_n henry_n this_o when_o you_o make_v he_o supreme_a head_n and_o now_o no_o body_n be_v this_o be_v treason_n against_o his_o own_o person_n as_o you_o then_o make_v he_o cranmer_n i_o mean_v not_o but_o every_o king_n in_o his_o own_o realm_n and_o dominion_n be_v supreme_a head_n and_o so_o be_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o england_n martin_n be_v this_o always_o true_a and_o be_v it_o ever_o so_o cranmer_n it_o be_v so_o martin_n then_o what_o say_v you_o by_o nero_n he_o be_v the_o mighty_a prince_n upon_o the_o earth_n after_o christ_n be_v ascend_v be_v he_o the_o head_n of_o christ_n church_n cranmer_n nero_n be_v peter_n head_n martin_n i_o ask_v whether_o nero_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o no_o if_o he_o be_v not_o it_o be_v fall_n that_o you_o say_v before_o that_o all_o prince_n be_v and_o ever_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o realm_n cranmer_n nay_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d for_o nero_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o worldly_a respect_n of_o the_o temporal_a body_n of_o man_n of_o who_o the_o church_n consist_v for_o so_o he_o behead_v peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o turck_n too_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o turkey_n martin_n then_o he_o that_o behead_v the_o head_n of_o
to_o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n that_o she_o will_v marry_v he_o 107._o and_o by_o promise_v other_o favour_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolck_n have_v by_o their_o solicitation_n gain_v most_o of_o the_o nobility_n 107._o and_o the_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n who_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o election_n in_o their_o several_a county_n have_v retain_v such_o man_n for_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o they_o conceive_v mo●●_n likely_a to_o comply_v with_o the_o queen_n new_a design_n in_o revive_v that_o religion_n which_o but_o five_o year_n before_o them-selve_n and_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n have_v reject_v as_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o groundless_a novelty_n devise_v by_o some_o l●wed_a revolt_a friar_n and_o priest_n and_o have_v observe_v how_o all_o sober_a and_o conscientious_a man_n we●●_n trouble_v to_o see_v so_o shameful_a a_o change_n introduce_v only_o for_o maintain_v the_o weakness_n of_o a_o title_n against_o the_o clear_a right_n of_o the_o steward_n and_o fear_v least_o this_o scruple_n may_v spread_v and_o work_v upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o illiterate_a multitude_n 103._o it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o command_v bishop_n jewel_n the_o fit_a man_n for_o so_o impudent_a a_o undertake_n to_o assert_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o particular_a tenet_n of_o the_o new_a church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o in_o form_n of_o a_o challenge_n against_o all_o roman_a catholic_n he_o publish_v at_o paul_n cross_n that_o the_o religion_n which_o the_o queen_n and_o parliament_n have_v then_o establish_v by_o law_n be_v no_o novelty_n nor_o new_a invent_a sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o the_o same_o which_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n and_o all_o orthodox_n christian_n hold_v for_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n which_o thing_n he_o undertake_v to_o demonstrat_fw-la by_o undeniable_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o live_v in_o those_o six_o first_o century_n the_o word_n of_o this_o challenge_n we_o have_v set_v down_o heretofore_o 1_o as_o also_o the_o confutation_n thereof_o one_o rastal_n have_v write_v against_o this_o challenge_n jewel_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o learned_a protestant_a clergy_n compose_v that_o famous_a apology_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n both_o in_o latin_a and_o english_a it_o come_v out_o first_o in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o whole_a church_n though_o i_o believe_v jewel_n have_v the_o word_v of_o it_o because_o afterward_o his_o name_n be_v set_v to_o it_o and_o to_o the_o defence_n thereof_o but_o without_o doubt_v all_o the_o able_a man_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n have_v their_o hand_n and_o head_n in_o the_o work_n against_o it_o divers_a appear_v in_o print_n stapleton_n sanders_n and_o harding_n whereupon_o say_v dean_n walsingham_n in_o his_o search_n of_o religion_n pag._n 166._o mr._n jewel_n within_o few_o year_n after_o set_v forth_o the_o reply_n to_o d._n r_o harding_n which_o be_v esteem_v to_o have_v be_v make_v by_o joint_a labour_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n in_o england_n both_o in_o london_n and_o the_o university_n but_o in_o these_o their_o labour_n they_o be_v convict_v of_o a_o thousand_o and_o odd_a falsification_n reader_n and_o yet_o say_v harding_n of_o 26._o article_n only_o five_o have_v pass_v our_o examination_n imagine_v then_o what_o number_n be_v like_a to_o rise_v of_o the_o whole_a work_n i_o will_v mention_v but_o one_o or_o two_o of_o every_o controversy_n i_o hope_v that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o no_o one_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n differ_v from_o roman_a catholic_n can_v be_v maintain_v even_o by_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n without_o fraud_n falsehood_n and_o imposture_n and_o do_v choose_v to_o instance_n particular_n out_o of_o this_o apology_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o work_n of_o their_o first_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n 131_o and_o the_o very_a bulwark_n of_o their_o church_n but_o as_o d._n r_o heylin_n true_o say_v the_o magazine_n from_o whence_o all_o the_o protestant_a controversy_n since_o that_o time_n have_v furnish_v them-selve_n with_o argument_n and_o authority_n we_o will_v omit_v most_o of_o their_o corruption_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o apology_n because_o we_o have_v convict_v they_o elsewhere_o of_o that_o crime_n but_o that_o they_o may_v not_o imagine_v we_o what_o matter_n even_o in_o this_o work_n of_o they_o let_v the_o curious_a read_v 〈…〉_z epistle_n to_o m._n r_o jewel_n set_v before_o his_o return_n 〈◊〉_d untruths_n where_o he_o tell_v he_o you_o have_v falsify_v and_o mangle_v the_o very_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n namely_o of_o saint_n paul_n in_o one_o chapter_n nine_o time_n as_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v in_o the_o three_o article_n of_o his_o book_n fol._n 107._o subsect_n i._o the_o protestant_a clergy_n convict_v of_o falsehood_n in_o their_o apology_n concern_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n bishop_n jewel_n and_o his_o associate_n maintain_v with_o most_o protestant_n that_o to_o receive_v the_o b._n sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d one_o kind_n only_o be_v against_o the_o institution_n of_o christ●_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v allow_v nor_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o ever_o be_v during_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n so_o that_o the_o controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o harding_n be_v whether_o in_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n any_o communion_n be_v minister_v under_o one_o kind_n 134._o or_o no_o which_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o m._n r_o jewel_n deny_v against_o who_o harding_n give_v a_o instance_n out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o one_o serapian_a that_o be_v communicate_v in_o his_o death_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o mr._n jewel_n see_v him-self_n convict_v reply_v that_o it_o be_v not_o our_o question_n we_o understand_v not_o of_o private_a communion_n but_o of_o public_a in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o first_o propose_v of_o the_o question_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o church_n or_o public_a and_o the_o whole_a controversy_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v whether_o with_o out_o breach_n of_o christ_n institution_n any_o man_n may_v communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o then_o mr._n jewel_n be_v demand_v whether_o if_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o sick_a person_n have_v receive_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n in_o the_o church_n it_o will_v satisfy_v he_o where_o to_o he_o answer_v no_o say_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o i_o deny_v be_v that_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v any_o one_o sufficient_a example_n or_o authority_n 132._o that_o ever_o the_o whole_a people_n receive_v the_o communion_n in_o open_a church_n in_o one_o kind_n within_o that_o time_n then_o he_o be_v urge_v further_o whether_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o close_o chapel_n and_o oratory_n in_o wilderness_n and_o cave_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o communion_n be_v practise_v under_o one_o kind_n this_o will_v satisfy_v he_o for_o so_o muc●_n as_o this_o prove_v christ_n institution_n not_o to_o forbid_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n but_o m._n r_o jewel_n leap_v also_o from_o this_o say_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v ever_o minister_v open_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n until_o constantin_n time_n the_o christian_n in_o most_o place_n particular_o at_o rome_n have_v no_o open_a church_n but_o private_a oratory_n and_o cave_n at_o length_n be_v demand_v whether_o infant_n receive_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n open_o in_o the_o church_n be_v a_o sufficient_a example_n jewel_n answer_v mr._n harding_n make_v his_o whole_a plea_n upon_o a_o jnfant_n and_o yet_o of_o infant_n as_o he_o know_v i_o speak_v nothing_o mr._n harding_n press_v he_o with_o the_o example_n of_o the_o two_o disciple_n alii_fw-la to_o who_o christ_n our_o saviour_n do_v give_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o at_o emaus_n as_o by_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o jnterpretation_n of_o ancient_a father_n be_v plain_a he_o allege_v also_o the_o example_n of_o s._n t_o ambrose_n and_o s._n t_o basil_n who_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n though_o they_o be_v priest_n whereunto_o m._n r_o jewel_n answer_v this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o question_n be_v move_v of_o lay_v people_n m._n r_o harding_n bring_v example_n of_o christ_n and_o two_o disciple_n who_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o 72._o and_o therefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v they_o be_v minister_n and_o not_o of_o the_o lie_v sort_n i_o demand_v of_o the_o laity_n m._n r_o harding_n answer_v of_o st._n ambrose_n and_o st._n basil_n which_o be_v bishop_n which_o evasion_n be_v not_o only_o fraudulent_a but_o foolish_a as_o if_o forsooth_o priest_n
doctor_n harding_n have_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o leontius_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n that_o john_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n say_v mass_n and_o receive_v alone_o jewel_n and_o his_o comrade_n answer_v thus_o a_o straight_a case_n for_o mr._n harding_n to_o run_v to_o alexandria_n a_o thousand_o mile_n beyond_o all_o christendom_n so_o sack_v his_o mass._n as_o if_o at_o that_o time_n alexandria_n be_v not_o almost_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o christendom_n or_o though_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o infidel_n as_o if_o that_o can_v be_v a_o argument_n of_o any_o force_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v no_o less_o pure_a when_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o practise_v among_o jdolater_n then_o at_o this_o present_a among_o christian_n doctor_n stapleton_n confute_v some_o objection_n of_o the_o english_a apology_n against_o harding_n quote_v both_o his_o word_n and_o jewel_n be_v thus_o st._n andrew_n the_o apostle_n say_v mr._n harding_n touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o mass_n worship_v god_n every_o day_n with_o the_o same_o service_n as_o priest_n now_o do_v in_o celebrate_v the_o external_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n jewel_n thus_o answer_v the_o 6._o untruth_n s._n andrew_n say_v the_o communion_n not_o the_o mass._n mr._n harding_n say_v further_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o most_o plain_o treat_v of_o and_o a_o form_n of_o mass_n much_o agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v use_v in_o these_o day_n set_v forth_o by_o st._n dyonise_n scholar_n to_o st._n paul_n mr._n jewel_n the_o nine_o untruth_n it_o be_v the_o very_a form_n of_o the_o communion_n and_o nothing_o like_o the_o private_a mass._n mr._n harding_n again_o i_o refer_v they_o instead_o of_o many_o to_o the_o two_o father_n basil_n and_o chrysostom_n who_o mass_n be_v lest_o to_o posterity_n in_o these_o time_n mr._n jewel_n the_o 11._o untruth_n they_o contain_v the_o very_a order_n of_o the_o communion_n mr._n harding_n yet_o further_o among_o all_o other_o father_n cyrillus_n hierosolimitanus_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o light_o who_o at_o large_a expound_v the_o whole_a mass_n use_v in_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o time_n the_o same_o which_o now_o we_o find_v in_o old_a st._n clement_n long_o before_o he_o and_o other_o mr._n jewel_n the_o 12._o untruth_n it_o be_v the_o very_a express_a order_n of_o the_o communion_n and_o after_o this_o ●●●●ulous_a manner_n of_o contradict_v without_o confute_v doctor_n harding_n particular_a instance_n jewel_n exclaim_v o_o mr._n harding_n be_v it_o not_o possible_a your_o religion_n 33._o may_v stand_v without_o lie_n so_o many_o untruth_n in_o so_o little_a room_n without_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o world_n without_o fear_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n his_o fond_a fraud_n be_v detect_v and_o his_o untruth_n return_v upon_o him-self_n by_o d._n r_o stapleton_n who_o tell_v bishop_n jewel_n that_o in_o the_o catholic_n sense_n the_o mass_n and_o communion_n be_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n in_o substance_n the_o communion_n be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o mass_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o sacrificie_fw-la for_o which_o cause_n the_o priest_n always_o communicate_v either_o alone_a or_o with_o other_o when_o company_n do_v offer_v itself_o or_o be_v prepare_v for_o it_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v a_o fraud_n say_v he_o m._n r_o jewel_n to_o put_v a_o contradiction_n between_o communion_n and_o private_a mass_n as_o though_o the_o one_o can_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o other_o say_v that_o the_o forename_a father_n which_o be_v cite_v to_o have_v say_v mass_n say_v the_o communion_n and_o no_o mass_n where_o as_o we_o say_v m._n r_o sta●●●ton_n hold_v that_o they_o do_v both_o and_o say_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o that_o be_v they_o celebrate_v the_o daily_a sacrificie_fw-la and_o therewithal_o do_v communicate_v but_o if_o m._n r_o jewel_n mean_v of_o the_o english_a communion_n where_o in_o no_o external_a sacrifice_n nor_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v acknowledge_v or_o believe_v then_o prove_v d._n r_o stapleton_n that_o the_o foresay_a father_n can_v possible_o be_v understand_v to_o speak_v of_o that_o communion_n for_o that_o in_o their_o say_a liturgy_n they_o do_v make_v express_a mention_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n flesh_n therein_o and_o of_o the_o offer_v up_o as_o the_o express_a word_n of_o s._n andrew_n be_v of_o the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n in_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n and_o moreover_o in_o st._n dionise_v his_o mass_n there_o be_v express_a mention_n of_o oblation_n and_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o altar_n cense_v achaiae_n communion_n and_o memory_n of_o saint_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o the_o english_a liturgy_n or_o communion_n and_o much_o more_o he_o show_v the_o same_o in_o the_o mass_n or_o liturgy_n of_o st._n basil_n and_o st._n chrysostom_n where_o after_o the_o oblation_n make_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n commemoration_n be_v make_v also_o of_o the_o bless_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o namely_o of_o our_o b._n lady_n and_o st._n john_n baptist_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o day_n and_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o last_o clause_n st._n cyrill_n do_v explicat_fw-la more_o particular_o say_v when_o we_o offer_v up_o this_o sacrifice_n after_o the_o oblation_n we_o make_v mention_n of_o those_o which_o have_v depart_v this_o life_n before_o we_o and_o first_o of_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n that_o by_o their_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n almighty_a god_n may_v receive_v our_o prayer_n and_o then_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o bishop_n depart_v and_o last_o we_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n which_o among_o we_o have_v decease_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o great_a relief_n of_o soul_n for_o who_o the_o intercession_n of_o that_o holy_a and_o dreadful_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v offer_v these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o st._n cyrill_n whereupon_o mr._n stapleton_n demand_v be_v this_o the_o express_a order_n of_o your_o communion_n here_o you_o see_v say_v he_o be_v oblation_n sacrifice_n altar_n prayer_n to_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v all_o this_o don_n in_o your_o english_a communion_n and_o now_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n exclaim_v against_o jewel_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o they_o do_v against_o 〈◊〉_d be_v it_o not_o possible_a your_o religion_n may_v stand_v without_o l●es_n subsect_v vi_o prelatic_a falsification_n and_o corruption_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n a_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o most_o trouble_a bishop_n jewel_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_n prelate_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v there_o notorious_a want_n of_o episcopal_a character_n and_o succession_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o true_a bishop_n of_o england_n refuse_v to_o ordain_v they_o after_o that_o them-selve_n have_v be_v violent_o deprive_v of_o their_o sea_n by_o the_o queen_n command_n 1._o for_o not_o conform_v to_o she_o she_o supremacy_n and_o new_a doctrine_n mr._n jewel_n therefore_o and_o his_o comrade_n observe_v how_o much_o their_o cause_n be_v prejudice_v by_o this_o want_n of_o succession_n publish_v and_o preach_v many_o thing_n to_o discredit_v the_o same_o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n th●●_n write_v thus_o by_o succession_n christ_n say_v that_o desolation_n shall_v 〈…〉_z the_o holy_a place_n 132._o and_o antichrist_n shall_v press_v into_o the_o room_n 〈…〉_z and_o for_o proof_n they_o note_v in_o the_o margin_n mat._n 24._o and_o in_o the_o same_o defence_n pag._n 127._o they_o say_v of_o succession_n st._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o faithful_a at_o ephesus_n i_o know_v that_o after_o my_o departure_n hence_o raven_a wolf_n shall_v enter_v and_o succeed_v i_o and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o yourselves_o there_o shall_v by_o succession_n spring_v up_o man_n speak_v perverse_o whereas_o st._n paul_n have_v never_o a_o word_n of_o succession_n 〈◊〉_d succeed_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o mention_n of_o succession_n in_o matthew_n 24._o but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a be_v evident_a by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o that_o antichrist_n enter_v by_o violence_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d dissolve_v all_o lawful_a succession_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o his_o time_n then_o enter_v himself_o by_o succession_n which_o point_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v foretell_v by_o st._n paul_n profane_a to_o the_o thessalonian_n 3._o when_o he_o say_v that_o except_o defection_n or_o apostasy_n go_v before_o which_o be_v a_o open_a breach_n from_o orderly_a succession_n and_o
the_o protestant_a clergy_n abuse_v the_o laity_n and_o illiterate_a people_n make_v 〈◊〉_d believe_v that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v a_o church_n teach_v and_o profess_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n and_o because_o some_o of_o the_o heretic_n to_o 〈◊〉_d ●●ckleffians_n hussit_n 〈◊〉_d lollard_n who_o he_o name_v martyr_n and_o witness_n of_o his_o evangelical_n truth_n be_v condemn_v not_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o church_n but_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n he_o tell●●h_v you_o that_o though_o the_o statu●s_o 〈…〉_z person_n preach_v divers_a sermon_n 〈◊〉_d herely_n 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n and_o 〈◊〉_d error_n to_o the_o blemish_n of_o christian_a faith_n &c_n &c_n yet_o notwithstanding_o whosoever_o read_v history_n and_o the_o 〈…〉_z of_o 〈…〉_z see_v these_o to_o be_v no_o false_a teacher_n 〈…〉_z the_o 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n and_o to_o have_v teach_v no_o other_o 〈…〉_z then_o now_o 〈…〉_z their_o own_o preacher_n in_o 〈…〉_z and_o 〈…〉_z sir_n john_n 〈…〉_z be_v produce_v by_o fox_n as_o a_o witness_n for_o the_o protestant_a 〈◊〉_d and_o a_o chief_a member_n of_o that_o church_n and_o he_o in_o his_o professi●●_n 〈◊〉_d faith_n say_v 〈…〉_z church_n i_o believe_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o three_o sort_n or_o compan●●●_n 〈…〉_z now_o in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o sort_n be_v in_o 〈…〉_z of_o god_n and_o a_o full_a delivera●●e_n of_o pain_n the_o 〈…〉_z earth_n etc._n etc._n john_n fox_n to_o this_o speech_n of_o purgatory_n add_v 〈◊〉_d parenthesis_n of_o his_o own_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v part_n of_o oldcastle_n profession_n of_o faith_n if_o any_o such_o 〈…〉_z scripture_n fear_v his_o reader_n may_v take_v notice_n how_o sr._n 〈…〉_z be_v no_o protestant_n and_o such_o fraud_n he_o use_v in_o most_o other_o occasion_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n write_v to_o confute_v his_o act_n and_o monument_n and_o from_o whence_o we_o have_v borrow_v most_o of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v fox_n and_o his_o martyr_n now_o we_o will_v treat_v of_o other_o no_o less_o false_a and_o deceitful_a in_o maintain_v the_o protestant_a religion_n subsect_v iii_o doctor_n chark_n falsification_n of_o st._n austin_n and_o how_o he_o excuse_v luther_n doctrine_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o adultery_n and_o incest_n doctor_n chark_n be_v so_o great_a a_o pillar_n of_o protestancy_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n day_n that_o he_o be_v think_v the_o fit_a man_n to_o dispute_v against_o learned_a campian_n in_o the_o tower_n but_o 〈◊〉_d behave_v himself_o in_o that_o occasion_n very_o insolent_o igno●●●●_n and_o uncharitable_o he_o write_v a_o ●ook_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v publish_v of_o himself_o luther_n calvin_n beza_n 〈◊〉_d ●any_n other_o falsification_n of_o mr._n chark_n to_o defend_v 〈◊〉_d protes●●nt_n doctrine_n his_o adversary_n object_n pag._n 122_o ●_o that_o 〈…〉_z st._n augustin_n text_n about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o concrescence_n where_o the_o censure_n have_v allege_v beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o other_o father_n one_o most_o plain_a out_o of_o that_o great_a 〈◊〉_d say_v concupiscence_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a 25._o if_o consent_n 〈◊〉_d yield_v unto_o she_o for_o accomplishment_n of_o unlawful_a work_n mr._n 〈◊〉_d allege_v another_o authority_n out_o of_o st._n austin_n in_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d that_o do_v as_o he_o say_v expound_v his_o meaning_n for_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d write_v augustin_n place_n be_v expound_v by_o himself_o afterward_o say_v concupiscence_n be_v not_o so_o forgive_v in_o baptism_n that_o it_o be_v not_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v as_o sin_n where_o the_o word_n sin_n in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v put_v in_o by_o mr._n chark_n for_o that_o st._n augustine_n word_n be_v d●●itti_n concupiscentiam_fw-la carnis_fw-la in_o baptismo_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o peccatum_fw-la non_fw-la imputetur_fw-la quamvis_fw-la reatu_fw-la svo_fw-la jam_fw-la soluto_fw-la manet_fw-la 〈◊〉_d concupiscence_n be_v forgive_v in_o baptism_n not_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o or_o remain_z not_o in_o the_o regenerate_a but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v as_o subsect_v iu_o falsification_n of_o cranmer_n and_o peter_n martyr_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n after_o that_o cranmer_n have_v be_v public_o convince_v both_o by_o scripture_n and_o father_n 〈◊〉_d his_o disputation_n at_o oxford_n ●s_n will_v appear_v to_o any_o that_o will_v read_v even_o his_o friend_n 〈◊〉_d concern_v that_o subject_n the_o catholic_n disputant_n object_v falsification_n and_o corruption_n of_o his_o in_o the_o book_n which_o 〈◊〉_d have_v compose_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n one_o be_v that_o whereas_o 〈◊〉_d martyr_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d answer_v to_o they_o who_o say_v the_o christian_n adore_a bread_n 〈◊〉_d we_o do_v not_o take_v this_o for_o common_a bread_n and_o drink_n but_o like_a as_o ●●sus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n incarnate_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v flesh_n and_o 〈…〉_z salvation_n even_o so_o we_o be_v teach_v the_o food_n wherewith_o our_o 〈◊〉_d and_o blood_n be_v nourish_v by_o alteration_n 1617._o when_o it_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o prayer_n institute_v by_o he_o to_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o same_o jesus_n incarnate_a cranmer_z thus_o translate_v the_o word_n of_o that_o ancient_a father_n bread_n water_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v as_o other_o 〈◊〉_d and_o drink_v be_v but_o they_o be_v ordain_v purposely_o to_o give_v thanks_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o be_v call_v eucharistia_n and_o be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o none_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o they_o but_o that_o profess_v christ_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o same_o and_o yet_o that_o meat_n and_o drink_n be_v change_v into_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o nourish_v our_o body_n 1605._o after_o cranmer_n confess_v that_o the_o former_a catholic_n translation_n be_v the_o right_n he_o excuse_v his_o villainy_n say_v he_o do_v not_o translate_v justin_n word_n by_o word_n whereas_o he_o set_v down_o all_o as_o justin_n word_n but_o only_o give_v the_o meaning_n let_v any_o protestant_a be_v judge_n whether_o he_o give_v iustin_n meaning_n you_o have_v corrupt_v emissenus_fw-la say_v doctor_n weston_n to_o cranmer_n for_o instead_o of_o cibis_fw-la sati●ndus_fw-la that_o be_v to_o be_v fill_v have_v pro_fw-la omni_fw-la paena_fw-la for_o all_o pain_n your_o book_n omit_v many_o thing_n there_o thus_o you_o see_v brethren_n say_v doctor_n weston_n the_o truth_n steadfast_a and_o invincible_a you_o see_v also_o the_o craft_n and_o deceit_n of_o heretic_n and_o thus_o conclude_v fox_n himself_o the_o disputation_n with_o cranmer_n doctor_n chedley_n do_v also_o object_n to_o cranmer_n his_o corruption_n of_o st._n hillary_n word_n put_v in_o vero_fw-la sub_fw-la mysterio_fw-la for_o verè_fw-la sub_fw-la mysterio_fw-la by_o which_o the_o whole_a sense_n be_v alter_v because_o verè_fw-la sub_fw-la mysterio_fw-la show_v that_o we_o do_v true_o receive_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o vero_fw-la sub_fw-la mysterio_fw-la 1602._o prove_v only_o the_o reality_n or_o verity_n of_o a_o sacrament_n or_o a_o mystery_n not_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n to_o this_o after_o many_o excuse_v cranmer_n answer_v that_o the_o change_n of_o one_o letter_n for_o a_o other_o be_v but_o ●_o small_a matter_n but_o weston_n tell_v that_o pastor_n be_v a_o bishop_n and_o ●●stor_n a_o baker_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v but_o one_o letter_n change_v as_o for_o peter_n martyr_n falsification_n they_o appear_v sufficient_o 〈◊〉_d the_o place_n themselves_o which_o fox_n allege_v for_o he_o out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d or_o twelve_o father_n in_o his_o disputation_n at_o oxford_n a_o 1549._o whereof_o the_o reader_n will_v scarce_o find_v one_o true_o cite_v in_o all_o respect_n but_o that_o either_o the_o word_n next_o go_v before_o or_o immediate_o follow_v make_v whole_o against_o protestant_n be_v purpose_o leave_v out_o and_o other_o put_v in_o or_o mistranslate_v as_o have_v be_v evident_o demonstrate_v part_n 3._o c._n 19_o &_o 20._o &_o 21._o of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o we_o ●●●●eare_v what_o every_o one_o may_v see_v in_o a_o book_n no_o less_o obvious_a than_o profitable_a sect_n vi._n how_o some_o protestant_a 〈◊〉_d in_o q._n elizabeth_n time_n see_v their_o fellow_n be_v prove_v falsifier_n wave_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o other_o continue_v their_o former_a course_n of_o falsify_v both_o father_n and_o counsel_n the_o discovery_n of_o jewel_n be_v 〈◊〉_d other_o man_n falsificati●●●_n make_v some_o protestant_a writer_n more_o wary_a and_o take_v a_o other_o course_n for_o defence_n
the_o king_n as_o chief_a head_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n who_o affect_v not_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v preeminent_a because_o king_n james_n insist_v much_o upon_o a_o spiritual_a supremacy_n they_o translate_v to_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a to_o maintain_v this_o error_n that_o priest_n may_v have_v wife_n they_o translate_v 1._o cor._n 9_o v._n 5._o for_o woman_n wife_n as_o if_o st._n paul_n have_v be_v marry_v whereas_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o this_o same_o epistle_n v._n 8._o that_o he_o be_v not_o marry_v i_o say_v therefore_o to_o the_o unmarried_a and_o widow_n it_o be_v good_a for_o they_o if_o they_o abide_v even_o as_o i._o and_o the_o same_o word_n which_o here_o they_o translate_v wife_n in_o cap._n 7._o v._n 1._o they_o translate_v woman_n because_o st._n paul_n say_v there_o it_o be_v good_a for_o a_o man_n not_o to_o touch_v a_o woman_n but_o here_o to_o translate_v wife_n be_v not_o for_o their_o purpose_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n cap._n 11._o v._n 2._o contrary_a to_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a they_o translate_v for_o keep_v the_o tradition_n as_o i_o have_v deliver_v they_o to_o you_o keep_v ordinance_n etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 15._o v._n 10._o they_o add_v to_o this_o text_n i_o have_v labour_v more_o abundant_o than_o all_o they_o yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n with_o i_o they_o add_v i_o say_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v with_o i_o 〈◊〉_d that_o where_o the_o apostle_n rather_o say_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n labor_v whi●h_v he_o and_o consequent_o he_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o prove_v 〈…〉_z they_o by_o add_v which_o be_v to_o the_o text_n 〈◊〉_d have_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o be_v move_v like_o a_o thing_n without_o li●e_z or_o will_v and_o thus_o they_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o protestant_a error_n ephesian_n 1._o v_o 6._o for_o he_o have_v gratify_v we_o 〈◊〉_d ●●lde_v we_o gracious_a or_o conduct_v we_o with_o gra●e_n they_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d have_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o belove_a against_o inherent_a grace_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o protestant_a error_n of_o imputative_a justice_n epist._n philip._n cap._n 4._o v._n 3._o for_o sincere_a companion_n help_v those_o woman_n etc._n etc._n they_o translate_v true_a yoke-fellow_n help_v those_o woman_n t●_n make_v man_n believe_v that_o st._n paul_n have_v recommend_v those_o person_n to_o his_o wife_n who_o indeed_o have_v none_o 1_o cor._n 7._o v._n 8._o notwithstanding_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o calvinist_n because_o reason_n o●_n state_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o parliament_n require_v bishop_n yet_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v zuinglian_n and_o calvinian_a in_o most_o point_n and_o doctor_z abbot_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o have_v the_o great_a hand_n in_o correct_v the_o bible_n by_o king_n james_n his_o order_n be_v calvin_n great_a admirer_n 10._o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o book_n one_o of_o calvin_n blasphemy_n against_o christ_n be_v that_o he_o fear_v and_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n nay_o and_o despair_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n do_v explain_v his_o descent_n into_o hell_n admit_v of_o no_o other_o that_o this_o blasphemy_n may_v be_v authorise_v by_o scripture_n cranmer_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n and_o church_n of_o england_n after_o he_o in_o their_o edition_n of_o tyndal_n and_o coverdales_n bible_n a_o 1562._o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n chap._n 5._o vers_fw-la 7._o corrupt_v st._n paul_n word_n speak_v of_o christ_n pray_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v hear_v for_o his_o reverence_n thus_o he_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o he_o fear_v to_o maintain_v their_o blasphemous_a paradox_n that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v have_v fear_v and_o feel_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n upon_o the_o cross._n to_o confirm_v also_o this_o wicked_a doctrine_n and_o confute_v lyn●●_n 〈◊〉_d j●●trum_n and_o purgatory_n dr._n abbot_n archbishop_n of_o cant._n and_o the_o other_o translator_n of_o the_o bible_n corrupt_v 1._o pet._n 3._o v_o 〈…〉_z for_o whereas_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v quicken_v or_o alive_a 〈…〉_z or_o soul_n in_o the_o which_o spirit_n come_v he_o preach_v 〈…〉_z also_o that_o be_v in_o prison_n they_o translate_v quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o also_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n 〈…〉_z this_o translation_n be_v so_o gross_a that_o doctor_n montagu●_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n and_o no●wich_n reprehend_v for_o it_o sir_n hen●●_n will_v to_o who_o care_n the_o translate_n of_o st._n peter_n epistle_n commit_v but_o sir_n henry_n savill_n tell_v he_o plain_o that_o doctor_n abbot_n and_o dr._n smith_n bishop_n of_o gloucester_n corrupt_v and_o alter_v the_o translation_n of_o this_o place_n which_o himself_o have_v sincere_o perform_v in_o pursuance_n of_o this_o their_o calvinian_a he●●sy_n and_o corruption_n they_o pervert_v the_o text_n of_o gen._n 37._o v._n 35._o translate_n grave_n for_o hell_n protestant_n deny_v more_o place_n for_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n then_o heaven_n for_o the_o just_a and_o hell_n for_o the_o wicked_a and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n 〈◊〉_d be_v damn_v or_o that_o he_o despared_a of_o his_o salvation_n when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v go_v down_o to_o my_o son_n into_o hell_n mourn_a gen._n 37._o 〈◊〉_d 35._o they_o translate_v i_o will_v go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n unto_o my_o 〈◊〉_d mourn_v and_o rather_o than_o confess_v a_o three_o place_n and_o by_o consequence_n purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n they_o father_n nonsense_n upon_o jacob_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o though_o jacob_n think_v that_o his_o son_n jos●ph_n have_v be_v bury_v in_o a_o grave_n whereas_o jacob_n th●ught_v and_o say_v immediate_o before_o vers_n 33._o a_o evil_a beast_n have_v devour_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v necessary_o have_v me●●●_n that_o he_o will_v die_v and_o go_v where_o he_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o his_o son_n joseph_n to_o be_v which_o be_v neither_o in_o heaven_n for_o then_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v ascend_v thither_o joyful_a then_o descend_v to_o any_o place_n mourn_v neither_o do_v he_o mean_v the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a for_o that_o have_v be_v desperation_n but_o to_o a_o low_a place_n where_o the_o lust_n soul_n then_o remain_v which_o be_v call_v lying_o patrum_fw-la or_o abraham_n bosom_n the_o way_n of_o the_o holies_n as_o saint_n paul_n speak_v be_v not_o yet_o make_v open_a because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o dedicat_fw-la and_o begin_v the_o entrance_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o by_o his_o passion_n to_o open_a heaven_n tertullian_n lib._n ●●_o advers._fw-la marc●●●_n say_v i_o know_v the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n be_v 〈◊〉_d heavenly_a place_n but_o only_o the_o high_a hell_n or_o the_o high_a part_n of_o hell_n from_o which_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n 〈…〉_z afterward_o that_o other_o ●ame_n lymbas_n patr●●●_n that_o be_v the_o very_a 〈◊〉_d or_o uppermost_a and_o outmost_a part_n of_o hell_n where_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n rest_v the_o word_n of_o st._n peter_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o v._n ●5_n and_o i_o will_v do_v my_o diligent_o to_o have_v you_o often_o after_o my_o decease_n also_o that_o you_o may_v keep_v a_o memory_n of_o these_o thing_n seem_v to_o protestant_n so_o plain_a in_o favour_n of_o his_o pray_v for_o the_o christian_n after_o his_o decease_n that_o king_n james_n his_o translator_n change_v they_o into_o these_o moreover_o i_o will_v endeavour_v that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a after_o my_o decease_n to_o have_v these_o thing_n always_o to_o remembrance_n we_o ask_v protestant_n why_o do_v they_o wrest_v this_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n and_o corrupt_a scripture_n against_o the_o honour_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o saint_n psalm_n 138._o thy_o friend_n o_o god_n be_v b●●ome_v exceed_o honourable_a their_o princedom_n be_v exceed_o strengthen_v which_o be_v saint_n hierom_n translation_n from_o the_o hebrew_n confirm_v by_o the_o great_a rabbin_z r._n solomon_n and_o the_o greek_a text_n and_o never_o except_v against_o by_o any_o learned_a father_n of_o the_o church_n until_o the_o protestant_a translator_n be_v please_v to_o alter_v it_o thus_o how_o precious_a be_v thy_o thought_n 〈◊〉_d o_o god_n how_o great_a be_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o as_o if_o multiplicity_n of_o thought_n be_v a_o admirable_a excellency_n in_o god_n whereas_o his_o 〈◊〉_d admit_v not_o many_o but_o rather_o one_o comprehensive_a knowledge_n without_o composition_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o have_v say_v of_o they_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n that_o they_o be_v more_o in_o number_n then_o the_o sand_n which_o expression_n may_v
it_o be_v your_o 〈…〉_z shall_v go_v home_o until_o your_o grace_n send_v for_o 〈…〉_z say_v i_o give_v no_o such_o order_n doctor_n cavell_n be_v 〈…〉_z say_v i_o understand_v your_o grace_n so_o 〈…〉_z lord_n tu●ning_a 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o knight_n it_o say_v with_o a_o angry_a 〈…〉_z as_o soon_o as_o i_o come_v to_o the_o court_n to_o day_n the_o first_o word_n 〈…〉_z speak_v unto_o i_o he_o ask_v i_o what_o i_o have_v do_v with_o he_o 〈…〉_z book_n you_o be_v a_o fellow_n indeed_o we_o have_v deal_v 〈…〉_z thou_o be_v a_o bold_a companion_n to_o deliver_v such_o a_o book_n 〈…〉_z then_o i_o begin_v to_o speak_v and_o to_o yield_v my_o reason_n 〈…〉_z but_o my_o lord_n proceed_v in_o his_o wrathful_a speech_n and_o 〈…〉_z and_o angry_a word_n he_o add_v i_o will_v even_o send_v 〈…〉_z thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v set_v on_o the_o pillory_n and_o to_o 〈…〉_z for_o a_o libel_v knave_n as_o thou_o be_v i_o answe●●●_n 〈…〉_z your_o grace_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v not_o deserve_v 〈…〉_z i_o have_v set_v my_o hand_n to_o that_o which_o i_o 〈…〉_z i_o desire_v my_o lord_n but_o to_o be_v teach_v the_o truth_n 〈…〉_z say_v thou_o be_v teach_v thou_o be_v a_o foolish_a bold_a knave_n 〈…〉_z as_o thou_o be_v before_o i_o have_v do_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_z lord_n have_v chafe_v and_o speak_v large_o his_o 〈…〉_z he_o have_v put_v i_o in_o a_o bodily_a fear_n truth_n the_o knight_n 〈◊〉_d corner_n begin_v to_o speak_v and_o say_v my_o lord_n he_o will_v be_v 〈…〉_z mr._n walsingham_n i_o dare_v say_v be_v sorry_a for_o his_o 〈◊〉_d you_o shall_v see_v he_o will_v conform_v himself_o as_o he_o shall_v 〈…〉_z yet_o still_o continue_v in_o his_o rough_a and_o angry_a 〈…〉_z no_o man_n forsooth_o will_v serve_v you_o but_o the_o king_n to_o 〈…〉_z allpunc_fw-la i_o answer_v may_v it_o please_v your_o grace_n to_o 〈…〉_z reason_n why_o i_o come_v chief_o to_o the_o king_n then_o say_v 〈◊〉_d lord_n why_o what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v with_o the_o king_n what_o 〈…〉_z if_o thou_o wer●_n hang_v like_o a_o foolish_a knave_n as_o thou_o be_v 〈…〉_z other_o such_o like_a vehement_a and_o threaten_a speech_n 〈…〉_z the_o end_n he_o say_v come_v near_o for_o that_o all_o this_o 〈…〉_z stand_v a_o loof_o and_o then_o he_o call_v for_o his_o secretary_n or_o notary_n say_v 〈…〉_z indignation_n to_o i_o come_v come_v you_o hither_o i_o will_v examine_v 〈◊〉_d lord_n ●_o will_v write_v to_o the_o commissary_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o 〈◊〉_d or_o hinder_v you_o in_o any_o thing_n and_o so_o call_v for_o pen_n 〈…〉_z his_o letter_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v this_o 〈…〉_z the_o bearer_n hereof_o seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o 〈…〉_z towards_o popery_n we_o will_v that_o you_o appoint_v some_o 〈…〉_z and_o learned_a divine_a who_o may_v confer_v with_o he_o and_o 〈…〉_z his_o doubt_n but_o let_v all_o thing_n be_v so_o do_v as_o 〈…〉_z not_o be_v discourage_v nor_o his_o infirmity_n divulge_v 〈…〉_z say_v my_o lord_n you_o see_v what_o i_o have_v write_v 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z any_o way_n prejudice_v you_o etc._n etc._n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o 〈…〉_z come_v again_o you_o will_v be_v well_o resolve_v and_o 〈…〉_z i_o hope_v so_o my_o lord_n say_v i_o you_o go_v to_o 〈…〉_z my_o lord_n yes_o and_o it_o please_v your_o lordship_n 〈…〉_z that_o be_v well_o say_v my_o lord_n and_o thus_o have_v 〈…〉_z my_o lord_n letter_n he_o bid_v i_o farewell_n and_o then_o 〈…〉_z leave_v of_o doctor_n covell_n he_o speak_v very_o kind_o to_o i_o 〈…〉_z i_o hope_v when_o you_o come_v again_o mr._n walsingham_n you_o 〈…〉_z of_o another_o mind_n and_o all_o shall_v be_v well_o and_o so_o from_o 〈…〉_z i_o pass_v to_o london_n and_o from_o thence_o the_o next_o day_n 〈◊〉_d country_n somewhat_o to_o satisfy_v my_o friend_n and_o to_o 〈…〉_z what_o the_o rumour_n raise_v about_o i_o 〈◊〉_d walsinghams_n address_n to_o mr._n rolfe_n 〈…〉_z of_o st._n alban_n and_o of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d with_o doctor_n downham_n and_o a_o other_o 〈◊〉_d the_o protestant_a clergy_n and_o his_o perusal_n of_o mr._n 〈◊〉_d book_n recommand_v to_o he_o by_o my_o lord_n of_o 〈…〉_z and_o of_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o defence_n 〈◊〉_d the_o censure_n mr._n walsingham_n thus_o dispatch_v without_o any_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o doubt_n 53._o he_o begin_v to_o distrust_v and_o suspect_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n and_o religion_n but_o howe●●●_n 〈…〉_z that_o i_o have_v read_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈…〉_z have_v drive_v i_o into_o many_o doubt_n 〈…〉_z i_o declare_v how_o that_o book_n 〈…〉_z who_o 〈…〉_z to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o god_n to_o have_v 〈…〉_z the_o church_n of_o rome_n search_n by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o 〈…〉_z have_v much_o conference_n etc._n etc._n which_o of_o true_a sure_o 〈…〉_z to_o be_v of_o some_o better_a faith_n and_o religion_n 〈…〉_z have_v the_o original_n and_o begin_n from_o the_o devil_n 〈…〉_z common_a practice_v of_o the_o papist_n to_o 〈…〉_z of_o god_n and_o i_o think_v i_o ha●●_n the_o answer_n to_o that_o book_n 〈…〉_z say_v mr._n w●lsingham_n have_v a_o sight_n of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d and_o now_o be_v dinner_n time_n mr._n doctor_n say_v he_o 〈…〉_z with_o mr._n archdeacon_n and_o so_o he_o leave_v i_o not_o 〈…〉_z it_o seem_v to_o have_v any_o further_a conference_n with_o 〈…〉_z make_v i_o conceive_v a_o hard_a opinion_n of_o mr._n doctor_n 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d who_o perceive_v in_o what_o state_n i_o be_v 〈◊〉_d idolatry_n antichrist_n &c._n &c._n will_v seem_v so_o willing_a as_o he_o 〈◊〉_d withdraw_v himself_o but_o meet_v mr._n rolfe_n he_o wish_v 〈◊〉_d any_o wise_a so_o expect_v doctor_n downham_n which_o i_o 〈…〉_z 〈◊〉_d with_o he_o to_o his_o house_n in_o company_n of_o one_o or_o two_o 〈◊〉_d more_o 〈◊〉_d mr._n walsingham_n come_v to_o dr._n downham_n house_n at_o 〈…〉_z show_v he_o some_o of_o luther_n work_n 71._o wherein_o he_o 〈…〉_z worst_a thing_n there_o he_o have_v note_v out_o of_o the_o defence_n 〈◊〉_d censure_n and_o the_o doctor_n always_o dive●ted_v he_o from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o truth_n and_o from_o compare_v his_o note_n with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o next_o day_n morning_n a_o other_o minister_n come_v to_o 〈…〉_z who_o he_o make_v acquaint_v with_o mr._n 〈…〉_z who_o thereupon_o desire_v 〈◊〉_d have_v some_o conference_n 〈…〉_z perplex_a soul_n and_o have_v relate_v to_o that_o ancient_a 〈…〉_z doubt_n the_o remedy_n he_o apply_v be_v to_o inveigh_v 〈◊〉_d the_o papist_n obstinacy_n untrue_a deal_n jndulgence_n etc._n etc._n 〈…〉_z word_n to_o answer_v mr._n walsinghams_n difficulty_n who_o 〈…〉_z the_o answer_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n take_v his_o 〈◊〉_d of_o doctor_n downham_n man_n by_o the_o jnstigation_n of_o some_o who_o be_v far_o blind_v with_o 〈◊〉_d against_o they_o mr._n bell_n second_o book_n call_v a_o survey_n of_o popery_n mr._n 〈◊〉_d peruse_v because_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o take_v no_o 〈◊〉_d some_o corruption_n he_o have_v find_v therein_o of_o st._n chrysostom_n 〈…〉_z of_o nice_n st._n austin_n st._n gregory_n etc._n etc._n with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d to_o show_v they_o to_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n who_o do_v 〈◊〉_d esteem_v the_o author_n and_o extol_v the_o book_n he_o read_v 〈◊〉_d three_o book_n of_o mr._n bell_n call_v the_o downfall_n of_o popery_n 〈◊〉_d he_o find_v also_o many_o falsification_n to_o maintain_v 〈◊〉_d and_o against_o pope_n whereof_o one_o be_v this_o antoninus_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o florence_n affirm_v say_v mr._n bell_n pag._n 40._o 〈◊〉_d pope_n martin_n the_o five_o dispense_v with_o one_o who_o have_v contract_v 〈◊〉_d consummate_v matrimony_n with_o his_o own_o natural_a and_o full_a sister_n 〈…〉_z father_n and_o mother_n 11._o cite_v these_o word_n of_o antoninus_n 〈…〉_z cum_fw-la quadam_fw-la ejus_fw-la germana_n which_o he_o english_v as_o 〈◊〉_d have_v hear_v his_o own_o natural_a and_o full_a sister_n etc._n etc._n cut_v of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o sentence_n that_o ensue_v and_o confute_v his_o falsification_n 〈◊〉_d cognoverat_fw-la fornicariè_fw-la who_o he_o have_v know_v in_o fornication_n 〈◊〉_d the_o sentence_n in_o antoninus_n be_v that_o pope_n martin_n the_o 3._o 〈◊〉_d a_o great_a suit_n and_o long_a deliberation_n do_v dispense_v with_o one_o 〈…〉_z marry_a with_o the_o sister_n of_o she_o who_o he_o have_v know_v in_o fornication_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o his_o concubine_n sister_n which_o dispensation_n say_v antoninus_n be_v hardly_o grant_v and_o one_o thei●_n reason_n of_o the_o grant_n be_v say_v he_o for_o that_o the_o par●●●●_n can_v not_o be_v separate_v without_o great_a scandal_n nor_o be_v fit_a to_o enter_v into_o religion_n now_o as_o to_o mr._n chark_n answer_n or_o reply_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n which_o doctor_n downham_n have_v lend_v unto_o i_o censure_n i_o find_v therein_o no_o satisfaction_n for_o i_o see_v in_o effect_n say_v
mr._n walsingham_n nothing_o but_o a_o colerick_a jnvective_n against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o defence_n tell_v he_o first_o and_o face_v he_o down_o that_o the_o cause_n why_o there_o be_v no_o public_a disputation_n be_v in_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n as_o be_v afraid_a to_o come_v to_o that_o trial_n which_o kind_n of_o answer_n content_v i_o not_o for_o that_o i_o expect_v he_o will_v have_v say_v that_o disputation_n shall_v be_v procure_v and_o that_o he_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o clergy_n will_v join_v in_o that_o suit_n to_o her_o majesty_n that_o then_o be_v second_o to_o all_o the_o way_n set_v down_o by_o the_o defence_n for_o try_v of_o a_o catholic_n and_o heretical_a spirit_n he_o say_v only_o that_o he_o and_o he_o will_v be_v try_v by_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o controversy_n will_v be_v about_o the_o sense_n and_o jnterpretation_n of_o scripture_n three_o to_o that_o of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n beza_n their_o life_n and_o doctrine_n which_o principaly_a i_o desire_v to_o see_v discuss_v he_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o answer_v scarce_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n but_o run_v into_o a_o great_a exclamation_n of_o popish_a slanderer_n and_o against_o the_o absurdity_n of_o indulgence_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o now_o in_o question_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v examine_v the_o place_n out_o of_o luther_n own_o write_n about_o himself_o and_o other_o both_o for_o life_n and_o doctrine_n but_o this_o be_v not_o do_v only_o in_o general_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o excuse_v matter_n or_o rather_o to_o divert_v the_o reader_n from_o attention_n unto_o they_o with_o this_o flourish_n of_o word_n as_o for_o berengari●s_n say_v chark_n huss_n wicleff_n luther_n etc._n etc._n we_o measure_v they_o according_a to_o those_o time_n wherein_o the_o lord_n stir_v they_o up_o 78._o and_o according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o grace_n and_o light_n he_o bestow_v upon_o they_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v their_o jmperfection_n therein_o we_o do_v not_o justify_v they_o but_o give_v god_n the_o praise_n of_o his_o work_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o place_n as_o man_n yet_o we_o may_v and_o will_v thus_o far_o defend_v they_o against_o that_o doggish_a tooth_n of_o youree_n that_o in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n whereupon_o depend_v salvation_n they_o be_v find_v with_o athanasius_n and_o all_o other_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n these_o word_n i_o say_v may_v be_v as_o well_o apply_v as_o a_o apology_n to_o turk_n jew_n and_o all_o heretic_n as_o to_o luther_n calvin_n beza_n cranmer_n for_o turk_n jew_n and_o all_o heretic_n agree_v with_o catholic_n and_o athanasius_n in_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n though_o in_o their_o imperfection_n as_o blasphemy_n judaism_n turkism_n heresy_n etc._n etc._n they_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o athanasius_n and_o therein_o we_o do_v not_o justify_v they_o be_v not_o this_o a_o good_a excuse_n think_v i_o with_o myself_o and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o goodly_a church_n that_o admit_v of_o such_o companion_n and_o fraternity_n say_v walsingham_n what_o he_o mean_v ●●en_o he_o say_v in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n whereupon_o depend_v salvation_n i_o can_v not_o tell_v see_v he_o give_v no_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v they_o and_o beside_o i_o consider_v that_o luther_n and_o 〈◊〉_d lutheran_n do_v affirm_v in_o their_o book_n even_o to_o this_o day_n that_o we_o ●scan●ants_v of_o england_n be_v damn_v heretic_n for_o deny_v the_o real_a pray_fw-mi 〈…〉_z and_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v good_a protestant_n 〈◊〉_d holy_a man_n and_o our_o brethren_n though_o they_o hold_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o we_o deny_v and_o condemn_v for_o idolatry_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o difficulty_n i_o find_v in_o effect_n no_o substantial_a answer_n at_o all_o mr._n walsinghams_n last_o appearance_n before_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n and_o his_o doctor_n the_o prefix_a time_n of_o my_o appearance_n draw_v near_o i_o repair_v to_o london_n and_o upon_o the_o last_o day_n of_o easter_n term_v i_o go_v to_o lambeth_n to_o present_v myself_o to_o my_o lord_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v from_o westminster_n though_o in_o 〈◊〉_d absence_n there_o sit_v as_o i_o understand_v divers_a doctor_n and_o prelate_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o his_o house_n at_o lambeth_n at_o length_n my_o lord_n come_v home_o and_o a_o great_a train_n with_o he_o come_v out_o of_o his_o garden_n he_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o i_o and_o present_o say_v unto_o i_o with_o a_o friendly_a countenanee_n and_o somewhat_o a_o low_a voice_n now_o mr._n walsingham_n how_o do_v you_o be_v you_o satisfy_v to_o who_o i_o answer_v no_o true_o my_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o yet_o satisfy_v whereunto_o he_o reply_v nothing_o but_o go_v and_o sit_v down_o at_o his_o table_n in_o the_o parlour_n together_o with_o his_o doctor_n and_o prelate_n about_o he_o whither_o after_o a_o little_a time_n i_o be_v call_v and_o then_o my_o lord_n begin_v to_o explain_v my_o case_n unto_o they_o how_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n contain_v in_o the_o defence_n what_o pain_v his_o lordship_n have_v take_v with_o i_o and_o other_o at_o his_o appointment_n and_o finaly_a that_o he_o have_v deliver_v unto_o i_o two_o book_n of_o mr._n bell_n write_v against_o the_o papist_n to_o satisfy_v i_o withal_o and_o then_o he_o call_v i_o close_o unto_o he_o at_o the_o table_n end_n and_o ask_v i_o very_o serious_o whether_o i_o have_v read_v they_o and_o what_o i_o think_v of_o they_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o have_v read_v they_o over_o with_o diligence_n and_o that_o my_o judgement_n be_v that_o the_o author_n be_v a_o golden_a bell_n but_o his_o sound_n like_o as_o of_o a_o brazen_a candlestick_n which_o i_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o many_o golden_a advice_n inference_n corollary_n and_o the_o golden_a sentence_n which_o he_o mention_v so_o often_o in_o his_o book_n but_o that_o his_o sound_n be_v no_o better_o then_o of_o brass_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n similitude_n for_o that_o he_o seem_v not_o only_o to_o have_v no_o charity_n in_o his_o write_n but_o neither_o truth_n nor_o sincerity_n in_o his_o allegation_n the_o archbishop_n hear_v i_o call_v he_o a_o golden_a bell_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n seem_v much_o content_v say_v that_o be_v well_o but_o hear_v the_o second_o demand_v why_o so_o and_o doctor_n barlow_n dean_n of_o chester_n afterward_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n look_v back_o upon_o i_o with_o more_o displeasure_n as_o it_o seem_v than_o the_o rest_n say_v why_o what_o say_v you_o to_o mr._n bell_n and_o all_o the_o other_o doctor_n in_o like_a manner_n cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o i_o room_n but_o i_o give_v the_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d mention_v and_o then_o my_o lord_n answer_v and_o will_v i_o to_o show_v wherein_o i_o have_v make_v that_o observation_n i_o lay_v forth_o upon_o the_o table_n before_o they_o the_o two_o book_n that_o i_o have_v peruse_v turn_v to_o the_o place_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n st._n augustin_n and_o other_o father_n which_o i_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v untrue_o allege_v by_o he_o presuppose_v that_o my_o lord_n will_v present_o h●●e_v command_v the_o say_v father_n work_v to_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o out_o of_o his_o study_n and_o the_o place_n quote_v to_o be_v examine_v in_o all_o their_o presence_n but_o no_o such_o matter_n ensue_v for_o my_o lord_n have_v slight_o look_v over_o the_o place_n in_o bell_n as_o he_o cit_v they_o he_o lay_v they_o down_o again_o and_o the_o doctor_n take_v they_o up_o to_o peruse_v in_o which_o mean_a space_n his_o lordship_n begin_v to_o talk_v somewhat_o private_o and_o mild_o with_o i_o concern_v thing_n object_v by_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n against_o luther_n etc._n etc._n my_o lord_n begin_v to_o talk_v unto_o doctor_n barlow_n who_o this_o while_n with_o the_o rest_n be_v look_v on_o bell_n book_n and_o begin_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o concern_v they_o seem_v to_o maintain_v somewhat_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o bell_n fidelity_n which_o yet_o appear_v not_o to_o be_v great_a with_o my_o lord_n himself_o as_o by_o some_o conjecture_n i_o gather_v but_o none_o of_o they_o as_o i_o say_v so_o much_o as_o once_o offer_v to_o call_v for_o the_o father_n work_n themselves_o to_o examine_v the_o place_n which_o be_v my_o desire_n but_o after_o some_o few_o word_n to_o and_o fro_o among_o themselves_o my_o lord_n command_v i_o to_o stand_v a_o side_n whilst_o they_o talk_v whereupon_o i_o retire_v myself_o by_o little_a and_o little_o down_o to_o the_o low_a end_n of_o the_o parlour_n that_o they_o may_v confer_v more_o free_o they_o talk_v together_o of_o this_o and_o other_o matter_n and_o after_o
and_o other_o saint_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o which_o morton_n answer_v nothing_o last_o he_o think_v to_o excuse_v calvin_n and_o free_v he_o from_o the_o manichee_n heresy_n by_o say_v that_o belarmin_n himself_o confess_v he_o grant_v free_a will_n to_o man_n in_o his_o first_o creation_n though_o he_o lose_v it_o by_o sin_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o also_o the_o manichee_n heresy_n to_o deny_v free_a will_n to_o man_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n how_o bp._n morton_n answer_v to_o belarmin_n imputation_n of_o arianism_n unto_o protestant_n belarmin_n quote_v st._n epiphanius_n and_o st._n austin_n charge_v the_o arian_n not_o only_o with_o the_o heresy_n of_o deny_v the_o son_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n ariani_n but_o also_o with_o deny_v unwritten_a tradition_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o say_v that_o all_o the_o sectary_n or_o protestant_n of_o our_o time_n teach_v the_o second_o error_n though_o not_o the_o first_o at_o least_o so_o clear_o the_o honest_a bishop_n morton_n acknowledge_v the_o second_o because_o he_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o charge_n and_o cavil_v about_o the_o first_o quote_v a_o other_o book_n and_o chapter_n of_o belarmin_n wherein_o he_o charge_v bullinger_n but_o as_o for_o reject_v unwritten_a tradition_n morton_n seem_v to_o be_v well_o please_v with_o the_o charge_n and_o rest_v content_v therein_o not_o only_o with_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o arian_n but_o of_o nestorius_n 64._o dioscorus_n and_o eutiche_n who_o belarmin_n couple_n with_o protestant_n both_o for_o contemn_v doctrine_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n and_o for_o their_o sacrilege_n against_o the_o sacrament_n altar_n priest_n monk_n votary_n &c._n &c._n say_v that_o protestant_n do_v commit_v the_o very_a same_o villainy_n against_o these_o sacred_a thing_n and_o person_n that_o donatist_n and_o all_o those_o other_o heretic_n have_v exercise_v to_o all_o which_o morton_n answer_v with_o silence_n how_o morton_n falsify_v and_o abuse_v belarmin_n who_o impute_v the_o denial_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o protestant_n 1._o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n st._n ignatius_n the_o martyr_n say_v that_o the_o simonian_n and_o menandrian_a heretic_n do_v not_o admit_v eucharistias_n &_o oblaciones_fw-la for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o confess_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n which_o sentence_n say_v belarmin_n be_v quote_v by_o theodoret_n in_o 3._o dialog_n out_o of_o st._n ignatius_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o christian_n of_o smirna_n where_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o now_o find_v belarmin_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o these_o ancient_a heretic_n deny_v the_o real_a presence_n rather_o as_o a_o consequence_n draw_v from_o their_o denial_n of_o the_o incarnation_n then_o as_o doubt_v of_o the_o signification_n or_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o that_o they_o differ_v in_o this_o from_o protestant_n that_o these_o deny_v christ_n flesh_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n though_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o have_v true_a flesh_n but_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n deny_v christ_n flesh_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o he_o have_v no_o flesh_n and_o here_o morton_n pretend_v that_o belarmin_n contradict_v himself_o and_o withal_o abuse_v calvin_n who_o as_o morton_n say_v do_v grant_v the_o real_a presence_n nay_o that_o belarmin_n confess_v he_o grant_v the_o same_o but_o morton_n corrupt_v and_o abuse_v belarmin_n both_o in_o the_o allegation_n and_o translation_n in_o steed_n of_o belarmin_n word_n by_o we_o here_o cite_v he_o put_v in_o only_a these_o as_o belarmin_n which_o sentence_n be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o theodoret_n in_o 3._o dialog_n but_o be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v find_v in_o theodo●●●_n make_v the_o reader_n believe_v by_o falsify_v belarmin_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o theodoret_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o theodoret_n and_o ●herfore_o he_o leave_v out_o the_o mention_n of_o st._n ignatius_n his_o epistle_n 〈…〉_z whereas_o the_o testimony_n be_v in_o theodoret_n now_o 〈◊〉_d both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a though_o it_o be_v not_o in_o st._n igna●●●●_n his_o epistle_n as_o for_o belarmin_n contradict_v himself_o in_o say_v that_o calvin_n do_v admit_v and_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n 33.34_o it_o be_v no_o contradiction_n of_o belarmin_n but_o a_o true_a assertion_n of_o calvin_n contradiction_n for_o both_o belarmin_n and_o valentia_n convince_v he_o of_o most_o evident_a and_o palpable_a contradiction_n in_o this_o matter_n he_o seek_v to_o say_v something_o different_a not_o only_o from_o luther_n but_o also_o from_o 〈◊〉_d and_o zuinglius_fw-la thereby_o to_o make_v a_o sect_n of_o his_o own_o but_o yet_o not_o find_v wherein_o to_o subsist_v or_o be_v permanent_a speak_v non-se●●●_a and_o contradiction_n for_o proof_n whereof_o belarmin_n do_v set_v down_o seven_o several_a proposition_n of_o his_o about_o this_o matter_n each_o one_o of_o they_o different_a from_o the_o other_o and_o some_o of_o they_o so_o contradictory_n as_o by_o no_o possible_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v reconcile_v or_o stand_v together_o as_o first_o that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v only_a 〈◊〉_d heaven_n and_o that_o in_o so_o certain_a and_o determinat_fw-la a_o place_n as_o it_o 〈◊〉_d as_o distant_a from_o the_o bread_n as_o the_o high_a heaven_n be_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o then_o this_o notwithstanding_o he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o supper_n the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v exhibit_v unto_o the_o faithful_a and_o not_o only_o a_o sign_n yea_o that_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v give_v 〈◊〉_d to_o that_o again_o he_o say_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o distance_n betw●●●_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n yet_o be_v they_o joy●●d_v together_o by_o so_o miraculous_a and_o inexplicable_a mean_n as_o neither_o tongue_n nor_o pen_n can_v explicat_fw-la the_o same_o and_o then_o further_o that_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v that_o this_o conjunction_n be_v by_o any_o real_a come_n down_o of_o christ_n body_n unto_o we_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a substantial_a force_n derive_v from_o his_o flesh_n by_o his_o spirit_n where_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o the_o conjunction_n be_v make_v not_o in_o the_o substance_n but_o in_o some_o essential_a quality_n and_o so_o in_o the_o five_o place_n more_o clear_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v make_v by_o apprehension_n of_o faith_n only_o whereby_o he_o contradict_v all_o that_o he_o say_v before_o of_o real_a and_o substantial_a conjunction_n 3._o and_o in_o the_o six_o place_n he_o confirm_v more_o the_o same_o by_o say_v that_o wicked_a m●n_z receive_v not_o the_o body_n at_o all_o quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la solo_fw-la ore_fw-la fidei_fw-la accipitur_fw-la for_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v only_o receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o last_o place_n he_o conclude_v that_o this_o sacrament_n do_v not_o give_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o faith_n unto_o any_o that_o have_v it_o not_o already_o but_o only_a 〈◊〉_d testify_v and_o confirm_v that_o now_o it_o be_v there_o and_o be_v but_o a_o sign_n or_o seal_v to_o use_v his_o word_n of_o that_o which_o be_v there_o already_o fin_n and_o this_o be_v the_o variety_n and_o vanity_n of_o calvin_n in_o this_o matter_n it_o prove_v not_o contradiction_n in_o belarmin_n but_o in_o calvin_n himself_o who_o inconstancy_n and_o contradiction_n all_o they_o who_o ●●plain_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n imitat_fw-la in_o this_o 〈◊〉_d as_o every_o one_o may_v see_v in_o primate_n usher_n bishop_n 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o other_o and_o now_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n we_o may_v ask_v protestant_n 12._o as_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n do_v 〈◊〉_d reformer_n and_o innovator_n of_o his_o time_n whether_o they_o believe_v the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o they_o answer_v affirmative_o he_o reply_v examinemus_fw-la ergo_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la vestram_fw-la ad_fw-la illorum_fw-la scripta_fw-la let_v we_o examine_v your_o doctrine_n by_o their_o write_n let_v we_o judge_n that_o to_o be_v heresy_n which_o they_o place_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o heresy_n and_o if_o so_o protestant_n must_v not_o blame_v we_o when_o we_o call_v they_o heretic_n for_o maintain_v justification_n by_o only_a faith_n with_o the_o simonian_o and_o e●nomians_n god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n with_o the_o florinian_o that_o woman_n may_v be_v and_o be_v priest_n and_o pope_n with_o the_o p●putians_n that_o concupiscence_n be_v a_o sin_n with_o proclus_n 1_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v invisible_a 9_o with_o the_o donatist_n that_o man_n must_v not_o fast_o the_o lent_n pray_v nor_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o aerian_o that_o saint_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v pray_v unto_o themselves_o nor_o
institution_n l._n 4._o c._n 13._o §_o 12._o talk_v of_o monastical_a life_n and_o evangelical_n counsel_n he_o write_v in_o this_o resolute_a manner_n nulli_fw-la unquam_fw-la veterum_fw-la hoc_fw-la in_o mentem_fw-la 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n it_o never_o come_v into_o the_o cogitation_n of_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v council_n any_o thing_n but_o rather_o they_o do_v all_o cry_n with_o one_o voice_n that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o one_o lest_o word_n utter_v by_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v obey_v etc._n etc._n out_o of_o which_o word_n he_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o state_n of_o perfection_n to_o be_v aspire_v unto_o more_o one_o than_o other_o nor_o any_o thing_n leave_v we_o by_o way_n of_o council_n but_o that_o all_o be_v command_v by_o way_n of_o precept_n 7._o and_o yet_o st._n paul_n say_v and_o by_o consequence_n with_o he_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o father_n talk_v of_o virginity_n i_o have_v no_o precept_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o i_o give_v council_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o say_a institution_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 19_o §_o 11._o calvin_n say_v of_o the_o papist_n praeterita_fw-la aqua_fw-la &_o nullo_n numero_fw-la habita_fw-la unum_fw-la oleum_fw-la in_o baptismo_fw-la magni_fw-la faciunt_fw-la they_o let_v pass_v and_o esteem_v nothing_o at_o all_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n do_v only_o magnify_v their_o oil_n of_o chrism_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v well_o that_o the_o roman_a catholic_n hold_v the_o use_n of_o water_n to_o be_v most_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o baptism_n and_o not_o the_o holy_a oil_n i_o hope_v protestant_n will_v reflect_v upon_o these_o thing_n and_o consider_v whether_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o possible_a that_o god_n will_v send_v such_o man_n as_o these_o two_o impostor_n to_o reform_v his_o church_n man_n without_o conscience_n 〈◊〉_d sincerity_n or_o christianity_n subsect_v iii_o fraud_n falsification_n and_o calumny_n of_o primate_n usher_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n the_o pope_n name_n say_v m●_n usher_n in_o who_o day_n this_o gross_a opinion_n of_o the_o oral_a eat_n and_o drink_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n draw_v its_o first_o breath_n be_v gregory_n the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o man_n of_o less_o erudition_n and_o learning_n then_o mr._n usher_n 〈◊〉_d assertion_n may_v be_v call_v a_o simple_a mistake_n but_o in_o he_o it_o 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o notorious_a fraud_n and_o wilful_a falsification_n of_o as_o many_o 〈◊〉_d father_n as_o he_o have_v peruse_v and_o to_o his_o knowledge_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n in_o particular_a he_o do_v corrupt_a justin_n the_o martyr_n his_o word_n to_o antoninus_n the_o emperor_n as_o cranmer_z have_v do_v former_o 2._o whereof_o 〈◊〉_d have_v treat_v part_n 3._o and_o remit_v the_o reader_n thereunto_o as_o also_o to_o malones_n reply_n against_o vsher_n answer_n pag._n 236._o st._n cyprian_a 〈◊〉_d before_o gregory_n 2._o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o mr._n usher_n 〈◊〉_d not_o be_v ignorant_a how_o he_o declare_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o these_o word_n this_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v 〈◊〉_d his_o disciple_n be_v by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o the_o word_n change_v 〈◊〉_d in_o outward_a shape_n but_o in_o nature_n be_v make_v flesh_n st._n austin_n also_o be_v a_o long_a time_n before_o gregory_n 2._o and_o he_o clear_v all_o doubt_n both_o of_o the_o mass_n and_o transubstantiation_n thus_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o say_v etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v of_o two_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o visible_a form_n or_o species_n of_o the_o element_n and_o the_o invisible_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n know_v and_o believe_v say_v st._n cyril_n hierosol_n most_o assure_o that_o what_o appear_v bread_n be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o seem_v so_o to_o the_o taste_n but_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o what_o appear_v 〈…〉_z the_o taste_n do_v judge_n it_o to_o be_v but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n mr._n vsher_n falsification_n against_o confession_n st_n basil_n say_v mr._n usher_n make_v the_o groan_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a confession_n so_o do_v st._n ambrose_n the_o tear_n of_o the_o penitent_a tear_n say_v he_o do_v wash_v the_o sin_n which_o the_o voice_n be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v weep_v do_v provide_v both_o for_o pard●●_n and_o for_o shamefactness_n and_o st._n austin_n 85._o what_o have_v i_o to_o 〈◊〉_d with_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o confession_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v heal_v all_o my_o disease_n mr._n usher_v not_o content_a to_o impose_v this_o sentence_n upon_o the_o mistake_a protestant_n as_o if_o it_o have_v declare_v the_o superfluity_n and_o novelty_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n whereas_o st._n basil_n speak_v of_o david_n and_o st._n ambrose_n of_o st._n peter_n who_o by_o tear_n obtain_v pardon_n for_o his_o deny_v christ_n before_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o confession_n not_o content_a i_o say_v to_o misinterpret_v their_o meaning_n he_o corrupt_v the_o word_n by_o a_o fall_v translation_n to_o make_v good_a his_o own_o fall_v interpretation_n add_v the_o word_n our_o twice_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d for_o our_o shamefactness_n and_o for_o 〈…〉_z endeavour_v thereby_o to_o draw_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o father_n from_o david_n and_o st._n peter_n unto_o all_o other_o even_o after_o the_o institution_n and_o precept_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n and_o as_o for_o st._n austin_n he_o speak_v of_o that_o public_a confession_n which_o in_o his_o book_n he_o make_v of_o such_o sin_n as_o have_v be_v forgive_v he_o in_o baptism_n and_o therefore_o need_v not_o to_o be_v confess_v to_o a_o priest_n it_o be_v a_o strange_a thing_n how_o learned_a protestant_n well_o verse_v in_o the_o father_n date_n impose_v such_o wrest_a text_n upon_o man_n who_o be_v resolve_v to_o examine_v they_o and_o to_o let_v the_o world_n see_v what_o the_o father_n have_v clear_o deliver_v mr._n usher_n can_v not_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o now_o his_o partner_n will_v have_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v 〈…〉_z positive_a doctrine_n of_o these_o three_o father_n concern_v con●●ssion_n st._n basil_n declare_v his_o own_o belief_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n 14._o 〈…〉_z word_n sin_n must_v necessary_o be_v open_v unto_o they_o unto_o who_o 〈…〉_z of_o god_n mystery_n be_v commit_v st._n ambrose_n if_o 〈…〉_z to_o the_o justify_v confess_v thy_o sin_n for_o a_o shamefast_a confession_n 〈…〉_z dissolve_v the_o knot_n of_o iniquity_n st._n austin_n exhort_v to_o confession_n say_v be_v it_o therefore_o say_v without_o cause_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n be_v the_o key_n thereof_o without_o cause_n give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n who_o so_o do_v repent_v let_v he_o repent_v thorough_o let_v he_o show_v his_o grief_n by_o tear_n let_v he_o present_v his_o life_n to_o god_n by_o the_o priest_n let_v he_o prevent_v god_n judgement_n by_o confession_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o will_v confess_v his_o sin_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o grace_n let_v he_o seek_v out_o a_o priest_n who_o have_v skill_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v etc._n etc._n let_v he_o consider_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o crime_n in_o place_n in_o time_n in_o continuance_n in_o variety_n of_o person_n and_o with_o what_o temptation_n he_o fall_v into_o sin_n and_o how_o often_o etc._n etc._n all_o this_o variety_n must_v be_v confess_v and_o be_v it_o not_o very_o strange_a that_o mr._n usher_n shall_v quote_v these_o holy_a doctor_n against_o themselves_o and_o his_o own_o conscience_n but_o the_o protestant_a religion_n can_v 〈◊〉_d otherwise_o maintain_v nor_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n enjoy_v two_o million_o sterling_a of_o yearly_a revenue_n all_o the_o other_o father_n speak_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o for_o example_n st._n gregory_n of_o nyssa_n interpret_v 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n for_o a_o partner_n and_o companion_n of_o thy_o affliction_n as_o 〈◊〉_d father_n show_v unto_o he_o bold_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v hide_v 〈◊〉_d the_o secret_n of_o thy_o soul_n as_o show_v thy_o secret_a wound_n unto_o thy_o physician_n he_o will_v have_v a_o care_n both_o of_o thy_o credit_n and_o of_o thy_o 〈◊〉_d against_o absolution_n of_o sin_n mr._n vsher_n pag._n 138._o of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o accuse_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n with_o this_o notorious_a calumny_n hold_v if_o you_o believe_v he_o that_o the_o sinner_n be_v immediate_o acquit_v before_o god_n by_o the_o priest_n absolution_n how_o soever_o that_o sound_a conversion_n of_o
city_n which_o be_v governess_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o have_v a_o entire_a faith_n in_o and_o concern_v god_n but_o say_v his_o lordship_n there_o be_v no_o promise_n nor_o prophecy_n in_o st._n gregory_n that_o rome_n shall_v ever_o so_o do_v and_o to_o make_v this_o the_o more_o clear_a to_o his_o illiterate_a english_a reader_n he_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o late_a part_n of_o his_o translation_n and_o in_o his_o gloss_n upon_o the_o sentence_n omitt_v the_o same_o word_n again_o say_v only_o it_o become_v that_o city_n very_o well_o to_o keep_v the_o faith_n sound_n and_o entire_a but_o how_o long_o semper_fw-la say_v st._n gregory_n for_o ever_o therefore_o bishop_n laud_n think_v fit_a to_o conceal_v that_o semper_fw-la at_o length_n he_o acknowledge_v a_o double_a semper_fw-la in_o s._n gregory_n but_o misplace_v the_o late_a his_o word_n be_v plain_a say_v he_o semper_fw-la decet_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereas_o st._n gregory_n say_v not_o semper_fw-la decet_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o always_o become_v but_o decet_fw-la it_o become_v that_o city_n which_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n 136_o semper_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la integram_fw-la fidem_fw-la habere_fw-la always_o to_o have_v the_o entire_a faith_n of_o god_n now_o who_o see_v not_o a_o manifest_a difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o proposition_n it_o always_o become_v that_o city_n to_o hold_v the_o entire_a faith_n and_o it_o become_v that_o city_n to_o hold_v the_o entire_a faith_n always_o the_o first_o only_o signify_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o faith_n entire_a whensoever_o it_o be_v do_v be_v a_o thing_n well_o become_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o second_o signify_v to_o keep_v the_o faith_n so_o that_o it_o must_v never_o fail_v or_o cease_v to_o keep_v it_o entire_a be_v a_o thing_n well_o become_v the_o city_n which_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n beside_o the_o government_n whereof_o st._n gregory_n speak_v must_v be_v understand_v of_o soul_n or_o spiritual_a because_o roma_fw-la vetus_fw-la do_v not_o govern_v in_o his_o time_n temporaly_a see_v the_o emperor_n reside_v in_o new_a rome_n that_o be_v constantinople_n therefore_o st._n gregorys_n word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a jurisdiction_n who_o govern_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o supreme_a pastor_n under_o christ._n but_o patriarch_n laud_n can_v not_o endure_v this_o and_o will_v needs_o have_v all_o bishop_n or_o at_o least_o all_o patriarch_n equal_a with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o christ_n institution_n and_o prove_v it_o p._n 200_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n hierom_n who_o mr._n laud_n mistake_v for_o the_o st._n speak_v only_o of_o the_o character_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o say_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v ejusdem_fw-la sacerdotii_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la meriti_fw-la evagrium_fw-la and_o by_o gerson_n book_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la when_o gerson_n say_v he_o write_v this_o tract_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la sure_o he_o think_v the_o church_n may_v continue_v in_o a_o very_a good_a be_v without_o a_o monarchical_a head_n therefore_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o church_n be_v not_o by_o any_o command_n or_o institution_n of_o christ_n monarchical_a gerson_n par_fw-fr 1.154_o answ._n gerson_n that_o famous_a chancellor_n of_o paris_n write_v that_o book_n in_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o trouble_n wherein_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n doubtful_a pope_n may_v be_v depose_v as_o also_o heretic_n 20._o but_o gerson_n never_o mean_v that_o a_o pope_n may_v be_v so_o depose_v as_o none_o other_o shall_v succeed_v he_o defend_v the_o contrary_a earnest_o and_o express_o consid_n 8._o his_o word_n be_v any_o civil_a monarchy_n or_o regal_a government_n may_v be_v take_v away_o or_o change_v into_o a_o aristocracy_n the_o law_n still_o continue_v in_o force_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o christ_n in_o one_o supreme_a monarch_n throughout_o the_o world_n because_o christ_n institute_v no_o other_o government_n unchangeable_o monarchical_a and_o as_o it_o be_v regal_a beside_o the_o church_n can_v any_o word_n be_v more_o express_a against_o mr._n laud_n assertion_n and_o yet_o his_o assertion_n be_v so_o positive_a that_o i_o have_v know_v a_o catholic_n divine_v deceive_v by_o his_o authority_n in_o this_o particular_a but_o after_o examination_n wonder_v at_o the_o bishop_n confidence_n i_o conclude_v this_o matter_n of_o protestant_a falsification_n with_o this_o fair_a offer_n let_v the_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o side_n show_v but_o any_o one_o say_v of_o any_o ancient_a orthodox_n father_n protestant_n or_o council_n quote_v by_o the_o reform_a writer_n of_o any_o nation_n or_o quality_n whatsoever_o to_o confirm_v protestancy_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o find_v either_o impertinent_a or_o corrupt_v by_o addition_n omission_n translation_n or_o conceal_v the_o word_n go_v before_o or_o come_v after_o whereupon_o depend_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o text_n let_v they_o i_o say_v but_o show_v one_o of_o these_o that_o speak_v clear_o in_o favour_n of_o protestancy_n and_o i_o will_v confess_v in_o print_n that_o i_o have_v be_v mistake_v in_o the_o opinion_n i_o have_v of_o their_o religion_n and_o of_o its_o want_n of_o truth_n but_o if_o not_o as_o much_o as_o one_o orthodox_n doctor_n can_v be_v produce_v to_o support_v their_o tenet_n and_o the_o credit_n of_o protestant_a writer_n i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n that_o we_o advise_v our_o contreyman_n and_o all_o christian_n to_o renounce_v their_o conduct_n and_o communion_n sect_n xii_o whether_o it_o be_v piety_n or_o policy_n to_o permit_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n of_o these_o three_o kingdom_n to_o enjoy_v the_o church_n revenue_n for_o maintain_v by_o such_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n as_o hitherto_o have_v be_v allege_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o also_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v fallible_a and_o by_o consequence_n for_o all_o they_o know_v fall_v and_o how_o the_o say_v revenue_n may_v be_v conscientious_o apply_v to_o the_o use_n and_o ease_v of_o the_o people_n without_o any_o danger_n of_o sacrilege_n or_o any_o disturbance_n to_o the_o government_n if_o a_o public_a trial_n of_o both_o clergy_n sincerity_n be_v allow_v and_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n grant_v that_o it_o can_v be_v piety_n in_o a_o prince_n or_o people_n to_o cast_v away_o so_o vast_a a_o treasure_n upon_o so_o uncertain_a a_o religion_n and_o clergy_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o protestant_n to_o be_v need_v no_o proof_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n but_o that_o it_o be_v policy_n though_o not_o piety_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n who_o title_n can_v not_o stand_v with_o popery_n to_o bestow_v the_o say_a revenue_n upon_o any_o man_n that_o will_v call_v themselves_o a_o clergy_n and_o engage_v to_o fool_v the_o vulgar_a sort_n with_o false_a scripture_n for_o frame_v a_o religion_n or_o reformation_n agreeable_a to_o her_o title_n and_o interest_n against_o the_o royal_a line_n of_o the_o steward_n lawful_a heir_n of_o this_o monarchy_n as_o little_a question_n can_v be_v make_v that_o the_o present_a possessor_n and_o pretender_n of_o bishopric_n and_o benefice_n will_v endeavour_v to_o justify_v and_o continue_v q._n elizabeth_n course_n though_o the_o case_n be_v alter_v and_o that_o such_o of_o the_o laity_n as_o have_v unlawful_a design_n in_o their_o heart_n will_v side_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o strive_v to_o gain_v or_o make_v a_o party_n and_o win_v the_o heart_n of_o ignorant_a and_o seditious_a people_n by_o pretend_v great_a zeal_n for_o that_o prelatic_a religion_n whereby_o q._n elizabeth_n usurp_v the_o crown_n and_o her_o creature_n the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n not_o despair_v but_o that_o as_o she_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o her_o council_n and_o clergy_n force_v or_o fool_v this_o nation_n out_o of_o their_o loyalty_n and_o duty_n to_o the_o steward_n by_o pretend_v that_o popery_n be_v idolatry_n so_o themselves_o may_v upon_o any_o occasion_n and_o perhaps_o upon_o the_o motion_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n have_v the_o like_a success_n against_o k._n charles_n the_o second_o as_o q._n elizabeth_n have_v against_o the_o queen_n of_o scot_n this_o be_v the_o only_a objection_n can_v be_v make_v against_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n from_o which_o say_v they_o will_v spring_v popery_n and_o will_v be_v the_o plea_n of_o policy_n against_o piety_n in_o case_n the_o falsehood_n of_o prelatic_a protestancy_n and_o the_o fraud_n of_o the_o faction_n interest_v therein_o shall_v be_v as_o zealous_o cry_v down_o as_o we_o presume_v it_o to_o be_v clear_o discover_v in_o this_o treatise_n our_o answer_n to_o this_o plea_n be_v 1._o that_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o legal_a change_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n have_v be_v always_o make_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o we_o may_v see_v
charity_n towards_o catholic_n be_v but_o force_v and_o feign_v whatsoever_o be_v require_v that_o a_o church_n be_v true_o catholic_n be_v visible_a in_o the_o roman_a it_o may_v judge_v and_o censure_v all_o other_o dissent_v congregation_n without_o note_n of_o partiality_n or_o illegality_n protestant_n have_v no_o credible_a nor_o legal_a witness_n to_o testify_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v roman_a catholic_n have_v if_o all_o sect_n of_o christian_n be_v admit_v to_o general_a counsel_n and_o therein_o judge_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o faith_n great_a illegality_n it_o will_v be_v and_o great_a partiality_n than_o that_o only_a roman_a catholic_n be_v judge_n of_o their_o cause_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n one_o part_n of_o the_o christian_n judge_v the_o other_o and_o the_o part_n that_o judge_v the_o other_o be_v that_o which_o obey_v and_o stick_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o st._n peter_n successor_n prove_v in_o every_o age_n until_o this_o present_a sect_n xii_o how_o god_n veracity_n be_v deny_v by_o protestancy_n as_o also_o by_o the_o prelatic_a doctrine_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o belief_n of_o god_n veracity_n consist_v not_o in_o acknowledge_v that_o whatsoever_o god_n say_v be_v true_a never_o any_o heretic_n deny_v that_o and_o all_o heretic_n deny_v god_n veracity_n but_o consist_v in_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v not_o colour_v nor_o countenance_n falsehood_n with_o supernatural_a and_o evident_a sign_n of_o truth_n protestant_n give_v less_o credit_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n minister_n and_o order_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n though_o qualify_v with_o undeniable_a sign_n of_o god_n truth_n then_o they_o do_v to_o a_o constable_n catchpol_n or_o any_o other_o the_o mean_a officer_n of_o a_o court_n or_o commonwealth_n though_o their_o warrant_n or_o badge_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o counterfeit_v than_o the_o miracle_n or_o sign_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n they_o will_v not_o believe_v god_n speak_v or_o command_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n though_o it_o have_v the_o supernatural_a sign_n of_o his_o trust_n and_o show_v his_o great_a seal_n miracle_n but_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n speak_v and_o command_v by_o any_o minister_n of_o state_n or_o inferior_a magistrate_n no_o minister_n of_o judicature_n or_o officer_n of_o war_n have_v so_o authentic_a mark_n of_o the_o king_n authority_n to_o command_v the_o subject_n and_o to_o end_v suit_n of_o law_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v of_o god_n authority_n to_o instruct_v mankind_n and_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v rebellion_n to_o contemn_v the_o king_n authority_n represent_v by_o the_o authentic_a badge_n thereof_o in_o his_o minister_n so_o be_v it_o heresy_n to_o contemn_v god_n authority_n represent_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n by_o supernatural_a sign_n as_o miracle_n sanctity_n conversion_n of_o nation_n etc._n etc._n god_n veracity_n may_v be_v lawful_o question_v if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o judge_v that_o he_o permit_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o prove_v by_o a_o similitude_n of_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n deliver_v the_o king_n mind_n to_o the_o parliament_n in_o his_o majesty_n own_o hear_n and_o presence_n veracity_n be_v a_o virtue_n incline_v to_o speak_v truth_n not_o only_a when_o the_o person_n speak_v but_o when_o any_o other_o speak_v by_o his_o commission_n for_o then_o the_o person_n that_o employ_v a_o other_o to_o speak_v be_v bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o own_o veracity_n to_o endeavour_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o his_o power_n that_o his_o minister_n or_o messenger_n utter_v nothing_o but_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o only_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a but_o also_o of_o small_a importance_n protestant_n make_v their_o own_o conveniency_n not_o god_n veracity_n the_o motive_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o measure_v thereby_o which_o article_n be_v fundamental_a which_o not_o the_o most_o fundamental_a article_n or_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v not_o permit_v his_o church_n to_o err_v even_o in_o not_o fundamental_o a_o demonstration_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n fallibility_n in_o not_o fundamental_n sect_n xiii_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v as_o also_o that_o neither_o the_o protestant_n faith_n nor_o that_o of_o the_o sure_a foot_n in_o christianity_n be_v christian_n belief_n not_o the_o matter_n believe_v but_o the_o motive_n and_o manner_n of_o believe_v make_v our_o belief_n christian._n protestant_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o sure_a foot_n believe_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o do_v not_o imagine_v to_o be_v evident_a in_o itself_o or_o evident_a to_o they_o that_o it_o be_v reveal_v they_o agree_v in_o make_v clear_a or_o self_a evidence_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o vary_v in_o the_o application_n of_o that_o rule_n the_o author_n of_o the_o sure_a foot_n apply_v it_o to_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n tenet_n protestant_n to_o few_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sure_a foot_n can_v not_o be_v excuse_v by_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o schoolman_n that_o say_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v possible_a and_o consistent_a with_o evidence_n of_o the_o revelation_n christian_n faith_n must_v have_v a_o mixture_n of_o obscurity_n mr._n robert_n boil_v expression_n that_o faith_n and_o twilight_n agree_v in_o this_o property_n that_o a_o mixture_n of_o darkness_n be_v requisite_a to_o both_o for_o that_o with_o too_o refulgent_a light_n the_o one_o vanish_v into_o knowledge_n as_o the_o other_o into_o day_n be_v not_o only_o witty_a but_o agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o to_o scripture_n hebr._n 11._o to_o believe_v be_v to_o trust_v the_o person_n believe_v and_o take_v his_o word_n for_o the_o truth_n as_o you_o do_v a_o man_n word_n or_o bill_n for_o money_n god_n worth_n and_o veracity_n be_v infinite_a we_o ought_v not_o to_o admit_v of_o any_o doubt_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n our_o assurance_n of_o faith_n must_v not_o be_v ground_v upon_o evidence_n either_o of_o the_o object_n or_o of_o the_o revelation_n but_o upon_o a_o impossibility_n that_o god_n shall_v by_o evident_a sign_n oblige_v mankind_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n of_o christianity_n and_o yet_o not_o reveal_v they_o or_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o deceive_v we_o god_n be_v not_o omnipotent_a do_v he_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o err_v in_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n though_o not_o fundamental_a because_o according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o one_o inclination_n to_o any_o thing_n be_v the_o application_n of_o his_o power_n to_o effect_v the_o same_o and_o god_n inclination_n to_o truth_n even_o in_o not_o fundamental_n be_v infinite_a he_o must_v be_v infinite_o concern_v and_o apply_v to_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o falsehood_n in_o the_o least_o article_n as_o well_o as_o in_o fundamental_n the_o different_a manner_n of_o believe_v god_n and_o man_n we_o can_v not_o believe_v god_n if_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o we_o he_o speak_v what_o we_o assent_n unto_o wherein_o do_v consist_v the_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n declare_v by_o that_o of_o rebellion_n the_o absurdity_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o of_o all_o other_o protestant_a pretext_n against_o the_o public_a testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n sect_n fourteen_o piety_n and_o policy_n mistake_v in_o make_v prelatic_a protestancy_n the_o legal_a religion_n of_o the_o state_n and_o in_o continue_v the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n it_o be_v want_n of_o christian_a piety_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n to_o introduce_v the_o protestant_a religion_n but_o not_o want_v of_o human_a policy_n because_o she_o have_v no_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n but_o by_o protestancy_n the_o title_n of_o the_o stevards_o be_v unquestionable_a and_o therefore_o they_o need_v not_o the_o support_n of_o protestancy_n how_o dangerous_a and_o damnable_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o make_v the_o temporal_a law_n of_o the_o land_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o protestant_a prelatic_a religion_n have_v no_o better_a the_o principle_n and_o privilege_n of_o protestancy_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o sovereignty_n and_o government_n every_o protestant_a commonwealth_n find_v it_o necessary_a to_o mould_n and_o moderate_a those_o principle_n and_o privilege_n by_o human_a law_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o constitution_n of_o every_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o episcopacy_n without_o which_o our_o parliament_n can_v not_o be_v legal_a be_v here_o in_o england_n continue_v with_o prelatic_a protestancy_n though_o contrary_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o protestancy_n and_o to_o
matth._n hom_n 20._o say_v omnes_fw-la infideles_fw-la qui_fw-la sub_fw-la diabolo_fw-it sunt_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la unum_fw-la nec_fw-la unum_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la sed_fw-la sunt_fw-la per_fw-la diversas_fw-la opiniones_fw-la dispersi_fw-la alius_fw-la quidem_fw-la sic_fw-la dicit_fw-la alius_fw-la sic_fw-la etc._n etc._n eo_fw-la modo_fw-la perfidia_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la qui_fw-la nunquam_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la unum_fw-la sed_fw-la quot_fw-la sunt_fw-la tot_fw-la sententias_fw-la habent_fw-la hilar._n lib._n 7._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la say_v haeretici_fw-la igitur_fw-la omnes_fw-la contra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la veniunt_fw-la sed_fw-la dum_fw-la haeretici_fw-la omnes_fw-la se_fw-la inuicem_fw-la vincunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la tamen_fw-la sibi_fw-la vincunt_fw-la victoria_fw-la enim_fw-la eorum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la triumphus_fw-la ex_fw-la omnibus_fw-la est_fw-la dum_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la haeresis_fw-la contra_fw-la alteram_fw-la pugnat_fw-la etc._n etc._n s._n athanas._n orat._n 1._o contra_fw-la arianos_fw-la say_v jllud_fw-la quoque_fw-la prorsus_fw-la admirabile_fw-la omnes_fw-la quot_fw-la sunt_fw-la haereses_fw-la in_o fingendo_fw-la diversa_fw-la pugnantiaque_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la adferre_fw-la nec_fw-la alibi_fw-la nisi_fw-la in_o falsitate_fw-la sibi_fw-la inuicem_fw-la consentire_fw-la see_v the_o centurist_n centurist_n almost_o in_o every_o age_n attribute_v the_o roman_n catholic_n miracle_n to_o the_o devil_n v._o g._n centur._n 9_o cap._n 13._o and_o osiander_n in_o epitome_n cent._n 9_o pag._n 63._o say_v the_o same_o and_o in_o particular_a of_o st._n bernard_n st._n francis_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n whitaker_n whitaker_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la pag._n 348._o and_o daneus_fw-la in_o his_o answer_n to_o belarm_n part_n 1._o pag._n 784._o 784._o luther_n in_o proefat_n assertionis_fw-la articulorum_fw-la a_o leone_n pontif._n damnatorum_fw-la say_v scripture_n must_v be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n and_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a than_o the_o comment_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o it_o but_o that_o to_o the_o proud_a and_o unfaithful_a papist_n he_o mean_n it_o be_v obscure_a see_v he_o also_o in_o lib._n de_fw-fr servo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la luther_n in_o his_o translation_n to_o assert_v his_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n add_v to_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o word_n alone_o against_o all_o original_n and_o copy_n swinglius_n to_o maintain_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o realy_a present_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o steed_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n translate_v this_o signify_v my_o body_n see_v hereafter_o more_o of_o this_o and_o of_o the_o english_a bible_n corruption_n corruption_n luther_n tom_n 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr ministris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la instituendis_fw-la fol._n 368._o &_o 369._o &_o lib._n de_fw-fr abrog_n miss_z private_a tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 249._o &_o in_o lib._n de_fw-fr captiv_fw-mi babylon_n cap._n de_fw-fr ordine_fw-la luther_n in_o assertionibus_fw-la damnatis_fw-la per_fw-la leonem_fw-la cap._n 10._o art_n 13._o say_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o pope_n do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o mean_a priest_n nay_o where_o a_o priest_n be_v not_o every_o christian_a can_v do_v as_o much_o though_o a_o child_n or_o a_o woman_n etc._n etc._n that_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o a_o priest_n a_o child_n or_o a_o woman_n and_o every_o christian_a may_v absolve_v be_v clear_a out_o of_o math._n 18._o where_o christ_n say_v to_o all_o christian_n quodcumque_fw-la solveritis_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o bullē_n incest_n and_o leaudness_n be_v afterward_o punish_v with_o her_o death_n and_o that_o of_o her_o brother_n of_o brue●ton_n weston_n norris_n and_o sineton_n all_o of_o the_o king_n privy_a chamber_n another_o escape_v death_n because_o he_o advertise_v his_o majesty_n of_o her_o immodesty_n before_o the_o marriage_n s._n ambrose_n use_v this_o very_a argument_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n sand._n lib._n 1._o cochlaeus_fw-la lib._n contra_fw-la morison_n the_o king_n of_o france_n pretend_v to_o the_o gallical_a liberty_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o their_o sicilian_a monarchy_n and_o other_o privilege_n the_o king_n of_o england_n also_o when_o they_o be_v roman_a catholik_o pretend_v to_o the_o like_a privilege_n presentation_n etc._n etc._n stat_n henry_n 8_o 34._o &_o 35._o be_v it_o enact_v tha●_n all_o manner_n of_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n in_o english_a being_n of_o the_o crafty_a ●●alce_a and_o ●ntrue_a translation_n of_o william_n tyndall_n and_o all_o other_o book_n and_o write_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n teach_v or_o compass_v any_o matter_n of_o christian_a religion_n contrary_a to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o since_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1540_o be_v have_v or_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o his_o majesty_n be_v clear_o and_o utter_o abolish_v the_o first_o reformer_n of_o the_o prelatic_a protestant_n church_n of_o england_n statut_fw-la 28._o henry_n 8_o cap_n 17._o a_o 1536_o see_v his_o letter_n in_o fox_n 1279_o and_o in_o stow_n pag._n 1036._o doctor_n bruges_n in_o his_o post_n script_n to_o d._n r_o pearson_n edit_n 1660._o 1660._o see_v the_o ancient_a father_n affirm_v it_o be_v the_o constant_a practice_n and_o principle_n of_o heretic_n to_o appeal_v to_o scripture_n alone_o s._n aust●n_n l_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n &_o lib._n cont_n a_o maximinum_n s_o hilarius_n l._n contra_fw-la constantium_fw-la s._n basi●ius_n l._n de_fw-la spiritu_fw-la s._n c._n 27._o &_o 29._o s_o epiphani●s_v haer_fw-mi 69_o 73._o 73._o s._n athanasius_n in_o l._n 1_o the_o decret_a nicen_n synodi_fw-la contra_fw-la euseb._n euseb._n s._n epiphanius_n haer_fw-mi 64._o theodor●●_n lib._n de_fw-la haeres_fw-la haeres_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o op_n c._n 14_o &_o de_fw-mi haer_fw-mi c._n 54._o mat_n 19.27_o 1._o cor_fw-la 7._o v_o 25.28.38_o 25.28.38_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n be_v well_o please_v to_o see_v themselves_o religious_o worship_v or_o respect_v and_o yet_o exclaim_v against_o catholic_n for_o show_v the_o like_a respect_n to_o saint_n saint_n see_v martin_n luther_n the_o first_o founder_n of_o protestancy_n ep_n ad_fw-la bohem._n in_o declarat_fw-la euchar._n &_o in_o servant_n de_fw-fr euch._n have_v these_o word_n although_o true_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a thing_n to_o use_v both_o kind_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o christ_n in_o this_o thing_n have_v command_v nothing_o as_o necessary_a yet_o it_o be_v better_a to_o follow_v peace_n and_o unity_n which_o christ_n have_v command_v we_o to_o follow_v then_o to_o contend_v about_o the_o kind_n and_o lib._n de_fw-fr captiv_n babyl_n cap._n de_fw-fr euch._n they_o sin_v not_o against_o christ_n who_o use_n one_o kind_n see_v christ_n have_v not_o command_v to_o use_v it_o but_o have_v leave_v it_o to_o the_o will_n of_o every_o one_o etc._n etc._n philip_n melancton_n in_o 2._o edit_n loc_n come_v impres_n argent_fw-fr a_o 1525._o fol._n 78._o he_o err_v that_o think_v it_o impious_a to_o eat_v swin_n flesh_n as_o also_o these_o thing_n be_v indifferent_a and_o place_v in_o our_o power_n and_o so_o i_o judge_v of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o they_o sin_v not_o who_o know_v and_o believe_v this_o liberty_n do_v use_v either_o part_n of_o the_o sign_n bucer_n allow_v the_o same_o indifferency_n and_o jewel_n in_o his_o reply_n to_o harding_n pag._n 108.109_o &_o 110._o john_n pezibram_n a_o bohemian_n protestant_n in_o his_o book_n the_o professione_n fidei_fw-la cathol_n cap._n 19_o here_o fear_v god_n and_o take_a notice_n of_o the_o evil_a custum_n of_o other_o i_o do_v confess_v that_o i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o condemn_v or_o censure_v for_o heretic_n any_o such_o person_n of_o the_o church_n as_o do_v impugn_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a under_o both_o kind_n which_o yet_o of_o necessity_n must_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o christ_n have_v recommand_v it_o the_o 2._o council_n of_o carthage_n contradict_v this_o article_n can._n 2._o omnibus_fw-la placet_fw-la that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n etc._n etc._n abstain_v from_o wife_n that_o what_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v and_o have_v be_v observe_v by_o antiquity_n we_o may_v keep_v see_v clement_n l._n 6._o constit._fw-la ap._n c._n 17._o &_o consil._n a●●●rcan_a 10._o &_o council_n neocesariense_n c._n 1_o &_o cons●l_n nic._n can_v 34._o and_o euseb._n de_fw-mi demonstrat_fw-la evangelica_n lib._n 1_o c_o 9_o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 59_o ante_fw-la med_n bas●l_v ep_n 1._o ad_fw-la amphilocium_n ca._n 6_o &_o epist_n 17_o ad_fw-la paragonun_n presbiterum_fw-la and_o cicil._n hierosolomy_n catech_v 12._o see_v the_o new_a ritual_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n publish_v since_o his_o majesty_n happy_a restauration_n d._n r_o heylin_n eccles._n restau_fw-fr q._n marry_o pag._n 19_o d._n r_o heylin_n cit_fw-la pag._n 33.34_o &_o 35._o heylin_n pag._n 35_o cap._n 14_o d._n heylin_n eccles._n resta_fw-la in_o the_o histor._n q._n marry_o pag._n 43._o stat._n a_o 1._o &_o 2._o pbil._n &_o mar_n cap._n 8._o dr._n heylin_n q_o elizabeth_n pag._n 107._o act._n 14._o v._n 23._o &_o
god_n give_v we_o ability_n to_o keep_v it_o but_o christ_n have_v fulfil_v it_o for_o we_o we_o luther_n in_o his_o sermon_n translate_v into_o english_a a_o 1578._o pag._n 147._o &_o 176._o 176._o act_n and_o mon._n pag._n 1338._o 1338._o mr._n wotten_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o popish_a article_n pag._n 92._o &_o pag._n 41._o 41._o mr._n fulk_n against_o the_o remish_a testament_n in_o epi._n joan._n sec._n 5._o &_o fol._n 447._o dr._n whitaker_n de_fw-fr eccles._n pag_n 301_o we_o say_v that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n sin_n do_v not_o hurt_v he_o this_o true_o luther_n affirm_v this_o we_o all_o say_v say_v act_n and_o mon._n pag._n 1335._o sinit_fw-la quisquis_fw-la veer_fw-la credit_n deum_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la operari_fw-la &_o disponere_fw-la sibi_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la ipse_fw-la plane_n ad_fw-la eam_fw-la rem_fw-la nihil_fw-la operis_fw-la seu_fw-la laboris_fw-la sibi_fw-la sumens_fw-la hofmannus_n de_fw-fr paenitentia_fw-la edit_fw-la 1540_o l._n 2._o fol._n 113._o whitaker_n contra_fw-la campian_n rat_n 8._o pag._n 151._o christus_fw-la conditionem_fw-la nobis_fw-la aliam_fw-la multo_fw-la faciliorem_fw-la proponit_fw-la crede_fw-la &_o salvus_fw-la eris_fw-la eris_fw-la dr._n fulk_n in_o the_o tower_n disputation_n against_o campian_n the_o second_o day_n conference_n 1._o 6._o 6._o whitaker_n against_o campian_n rat_n 8._o pag._n 143._o fides_fw-la aut_fw-la perpetua_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la nulla_fw-la est_fw-la the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o justify_v faith_n most_o dangerous_a and_o damnable_a my_o lord_n chancellor_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n at_o oxford_n luther_n in_o postilla_fw-la super_fw-la evang_fw-la dom._n 1._o advemus_n dominica_n 26_o post_n trinit_fw-la trinit_fw-la osiander_n in_o epitome_n centur._n 16._o part_n 2._o pag._n 647_o say_v of_o david_n george_n utebatur_fw-la enim_fw-la publico_fw-la vir_fw-la dei_fw-la ministerio_fw-la basiliensi_fw-la egentibus_fw-la elëemosy_n nam_fw-la subministrebat_fw-la aegrotos_fw-la consolabatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n etc._n historia_fw-la georgij_fw-la davidis_fw-la publish_v by_o the_o divine_n of_o basil_n and_o print_v of_o antwerp_n 1568_o si_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o apostolorum_fw-la doctrina_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o perfecta_fw-la fuisset_fw-la etc._n etc._n etc._n osiander_n in_o epitome_n centur._n 16._o pag._n 818._o schlusselb_n in_o theol._n calvin_n l._n 1._o art_n 2._o fol._n 9_o 9_o idem_fw-la schlussenburg_n cit_fw-la fol._n 9_o where_o he_o bring_v many_o other_o example_n of_o protestant_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n as_o also_o osiander_n centur_fw-la 16._o pag._n 207.208.209_o concern_v that_o know_a text_n i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v unum_fw-la one_o thing_n joan._n 10.30_o calvin_n avoyd_v it_o as_o the_o arian_n do_v saying_n abusi_fw-la sunt_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la veteres_fw-la ut_fw-la probarent_fw-la christum_fw-la esse_fw-la patri_fw-la homoousion_n neque_fw-la enim_fw-la christus_fw-la de_fw-la activitate_fw-la substantiae_fw-la disputat_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la consensu_fw-la etc._n etc._n calvin_n in_o joan._n 10._o calvin_n in_o admonit_a ad_fw-la polonos_n explant_v in_o tract_n theol._n pag._n 794._o sententia_fw-la christi_fw-la pater_fw-la major_a i_o est_fw-la restricta_fw-la fuit_fw-la ad_fw-la humanam_fw-la ejus_fw-la naturam_fw-la ego_fw-la vero_fw-la non_fw-la dubito_fw-la ad_fw-la totum_fw-la complexum_fw-la extendere_fw-la stancarus_n contra_fw-la minist_n genevenses_n tigurinos_n fol._n 94._o &_o 95._o &_o 118._o &_o 123._o affirm_v that_o the_o reform_a church_n profess_v the_o faith_n of_o geneva_n and_o tigure_n be_v arian_n and_o say_v conclusum_fw-la est_fw-la o_o calvine_n doctrinam_fw-la tuam_fw-la de_fw-la filio_fw-la dei_fw-la esse_fw-la plane_n arianam_fw-la a_o qua_fw-la resilia_n quam_fw-la primum_fw-la te_fw-la oro_fw-la atque_fw-la obsecro_fw-la obsecro_fw-la the_o word_n trinity_n be_v but_o a_o human_a invention_n and_o sound_v could_o luther_n in_o postil_n majore_fw-la basileae_n apud_fw-la hernagium_fw-la in_o enar_n evangel_n dom._n trinit_fw-la calvin_n ep_n 2._o ad_fw-la polonos_n in_o tract_n theolog_fw-la &_o pag._n 796_o say_v precatio_fw-la vulgo_fw-la trita_fw-la est_fw-la sancta_fw-la trinitas_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la miserere_fw-la nostri_fw-la mihi_fw-la non_fw-la placet_fw-la ac_fw-la omnino_fw-la barbariem_fw-la sapit_fw-la sapit_fw-la luther_n in_o lib._n contr●_n jacobun_n latomum_n 〈◊〉_d 2._o w●tte●b_n latin_n edito_fw-la anno_fw-la 1551._o the_o late_a edition_n be_v alter_v and_o corrupt_v herein_o as_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n osiander_n in_o epitome_n cent_n 16._o pag._n 169_o symbolum_n athanasiivocant_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la &_o fidem_fw-la satanasii_fw-la vanissime_fw-la insuper_fw-la jactitant_fw-la lutherum_n vix_fw-la tectum_fw-la babilonicae_fw-la turris_fw-la detex_fw-la isse_fw-la se_fw-la vero_fw-la ex_fw-la imis_fw-la fundamentis_fw-la eam_fw-la ex_fw-la scindere_fw-la scindere_fw-la whitaker_n contra_fw-la rat_n camp_n pag._n 78._o and_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o mr._n william_n reynolds_n cap._n 6._o pag._n 135._o art_n 136._o say_v the_o father_n thought_n by_o their_o external_a discipline_n of_o life_n to_o pay_v the_o pain_n due_a for_o sin_n wherein_o they_o derogate_a not_o a_o little_a from_o christ_n death_n etc._n etc._n which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o error_n yet_o be_v they_o notwithstanding_o good_a man_n and_o holy_a father_n from_o whence_o follow_v that_o indulgence_n purgatory_n satisfaction_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a merit_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v hold_v by_o learned_a and_o holy_a man_n mr._n bunny_n in_o his_o treatise_n tend_v to_o pacification_n sect_n 17._o pag._n 104._o excuse_v some_o point_n of_o popery_n and_o among_o other_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n say_v in_o these_o therefore_o or_o such_o like_a whosoever_o will_v condemn_v all_o those_o to_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o full_o persuade_v therein_o as_o we_o be_v etc._n etc._n commit_v a_o uncharitable_a part_n towards_o his_o brethren_n see_v doctor_n some_o against_o mr._n penry_n pag._n 176._o tindall_n act_n mon._n pag._n 1338._o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o saint_n bernard_n francis_n and_o many_o other_o holy_a man_n err_v as_o concern_v mass._n mr._n francis_n johnson_n in_o mr._n iacob_n defence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ministry_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 13._o do_v not_o john_n hus_n that_o worthy_a champion_n of_o christ_n and_o other_o also_o of_o the_o martyr_n of_o fore_a time_n say_v and_o hear_v mass_n even_o to_o their_o die_a day_n etc._n etc._n do_v not_o divers_a of_o they_o acknowledge_v some_o the_o pop_n calling_n and_o supremacy_n some_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n some_o auricular_a confession_n etc._n etc._n morgenstein_n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag._n 41._o these_o thing_n be_v pardonable_a in_o the_o godly_a who_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o papacy_n for_o the_o church_n saint_n for_o mediator_n and_o the_o mass_n for_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n luther_n de_fw-fr utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la say_v if_o thou_o comse_v to_o a_o place_n be_v the_o communion_n be_v minister_v under_o one_o only_a kind_n take_v it_o with_o other_o the_o like_a indifferency_n be_v affirm_v by_o melancthon_n in_o centur_fw-la epist_n theolog._n pag._n 252._o and_o not_o deny_v by_o bishop_n jewel_n in_o his_o reply_n pag._n 110._o &_o 106._o the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v a_o competent_a and_o unpartial_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o religion_n quid_fw-la praedi●averin●_n apostoli_fw-la quid_fw-la illis_fw-la christus_fw-la revelaverit_fw-la etc._n etc._n non_fw-la aliter_fw-la probari_fw-la debere_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la easdem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quas_fw-la ipsi_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la tertul._n l._n 1._o d●_n praescri_fw-la c._n 6._o all_o christian_n be_v n●ver_o judge_n of_o religion_n one_o part_n always_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o other_o that_o be_v in_o obedience_n to_o and_o in_o communion_n with_o saint_n peter_n successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n see_v bishop_n morton_n cit_fw-la and_o bishop_n taylor_n in_o his_o dissuasive_a pag._n 8._o edit_n dubl_n protestancy_n be_v heresy_n protestancy_n contradict_v god_n veracity_n the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n prove_v against_o protestant_n the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o fundamental_n confute_v see_v ariagae_n disp_n 4._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la sec._n 4._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v by_o god_n veracity_n heresy_n explain_v by_o rebellion_n the_o unreasonableness_n of_o they_o who_o pretend_v a_o private_a spirit_n and_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o want_v of_o clear_a evidence_n than_o the_o roman_n catholic_n have_v of_o god_n authority_n isaiah_n 49.28_o suinglius_fw-la lib._n 4._o epist._n brentius_n in_o confes._n wittemb_v cap._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la script_n &_o in_o prologo_fw-la contra_fw-la petrun_v a_o s●to_n l._n 2._o sect_n 6._o pag._n 112._o see_v heretofore●_n ●_z part_n sec._n 1._o how_o the_o centurist_n and_o other_o learned_a protestant_n confess_v the_o counsel_n and_o father_n defend_v worship_n of_o imamage_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n indulgence_n and_o all_o other_o point_n of_o popery_n bale_n in_o his_o act._n rom._n
their_o meaning_n in_o this_o particular_a for_o fear_v of_o scandalize_a their_o brethren_n abroad_o that_o admit_v of_o no_o such_o supremacy_n in_o temporal_a prince_n in_o the_o 24._o article_n they_o make_v it_o a_o point_n of_o the_o protestant_a faith_n that_o scripture_n express_o command_v the_o public_a prayer_n and_o minister_a of_o the_o sacrament_n not_o to_o be_v in_o greek_a latin_a or_o hebrew_n wherein_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v because_o the_o common_a people_n understand_v not_o these_o language_n but_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n must_v be_v in_o english_a dutch_a irish_a welsh_a etc._n etc._n as_o if_o forsooth_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o priest_n or_o public_a minister_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n or_o negotiate_v for_o a_o multitude_n of_o iliterat_a people_n in_o language_n they_o do_v not_o understand_v or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o understand_v that_o in_o public_a or_o private_a prayer_n they_o thank_v god_n for_o his_o benefit_n and_o crave_v new_a favour_n so_o that_o according_a to_o this_o article_n a_o greek_a priest_n can_v offer_v public_a prayer_n for_o the_o latin_n or_o even_o his_o own_a grecian_n who_o understand_v not_o the_o learned_a greeck_n nor_o a_o latin_a priest_n for_o the_o grecian_n or_o any_o other_o nation_n that_o understand_v not_o latin_n neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a that_o god_n who_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o grant_v what_o be_v demand_v understand_v the_o petition_n and_o hear_v the_o public_a minister_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_o require_v that_o the_o demand_n be_v make_v in_o a_o barbarous_a language_n because_o the_o common_a people_n understand_v no_o other_o in_o the_o 25._o article_n they_o cut_v of_o five_o of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n as_o not_o be_v sacrament_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o ordain_v by_o christ_n this_o extravagancy_n of_o doctrine_n be_v think_v necessary_a for_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o protestant_n church_n which_o despair_v of_o a_o succession_n of_o true_a bishop_n exclude_v the_o episcopal_a character_n and_o all_o sacrament_n that_o have_v dependency_n thereof_o in_o the_o 26._o article_n they_o endeavour_v to_o excuse_v their_o own_o lewdness_n and_o liberty_n though_o by_o inculcate_a truth_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o 27._o they_o condemn_v against_o their_o own_o principle_n in_o the_o 6._o article_n their_o brethren_n the_o anabaptist_n for_o not_o baptise_v their_o child_n which_o error_n can_v be_v confute_v by_o scripture_n without_o tradition_n in_o the_o 28._o they_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n that_o when_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o mean_v this_o be_v not_o my_o body_n and_o therefore_o that_o transubstantiation_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o holy_a writ_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o christ_n mean_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o he_o speak_v we_o shall_v confess_v that_o neither_o transubstantiation_n nor_o any_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o holy_a writ_n but_o only_o this_o that_o scripture_n can_v be_v understand_v nor_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n they_o add_v that_o the_o mean_v whereby_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritua_o receive_v and_o take_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v faith_n to_o receive_v and_o eat_v spiritualy_a the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o it_o signify_v any_o thing_n must_v signify_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v and_o eat_v and_o if_o this_o belief_n be_v true_a as_o it_o must_v if_o it_o be_v divine_a than_o christ_n body_n be_v rea_o receive_v and_o eat_v though_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n that_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n not_o perceptible_a by_o our_o sense_n the_o 29._o article_n be_v but_o a_o quotation_n of_o some_o word_n of_o s._n augustin_n the_o 30._o article_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v alter_v as_o also_o the_o 37._o of_o the_o supremacy_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n reign_n because_o as_o we_o find_v it_o now_o it_o contradict_v not_o only_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o chief_a protestant_a it_o reformer_n who_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v always_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a but_o also_o the_o statut_fw-la make_v in_o edward_n 6._o reign_n and_o a_o little_a before_o this_o article_n be_v frame_v the_o statut_fw-la 1._o edward_n 6._o cap._n 1._o ordain_v indeed_o that_o the_o b._n sacrament_n be_v common_o deliver_v to_o the_o people_n under_o both_o kind_n but_o add_v except_o necessity_n otherwise_o require_v and_o certain_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n or_o possibility_n for_o any_o human_a power_n to_o dispense_v with_o christ_n ordinance_n and_o commandment_n which_o this_o 30._o article_n say_v be_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o statut_fw-la suppose_v that_o both_o kind_n shall_v be_v administer_v to_o all_o christian_a man_n alike_o beside_o the_o statut_fw-la do_v in_o the_o end_n declare_v that_o by_o what_o it_o command_v it_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o usage_n of_o any_o church_n out_o of_o the_o king_n his_o majesty_n dominion_n which_o limitation_n do_v demonstrat_fw-la that_o the_o parliament_n and_o english_a protestant_n then_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o laity_n under_o both_o kind_n not_o to_o be_v a_o precept_n or_o determination_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o indifferent_a thing_n leave_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o have_v our_o modern_a protestant_n who_o grant_v no_o other_o substance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n whereunto_o they_o add_v nothing_o but_o a_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n passion_n any_o reason_n to_o upray_v we_o with_o robe_v they_o of_o half_a the_o communion_n see_v we_o exhort_v the_o laity_n to_o that_o remembrance_n and_o offer_v they_o wine_n after_o receive_v the_o species_n of_o bread_n in_o their_o 31._o article_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o mass_n in_o the_o which_o it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v offer_v christ_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a to_o have_v remission_n of_o pain_n or_o guilt_n be_v blasphemous_a fable_n and_o dangerous_a deceit_n and_o yet_o s._n cyprian_n lib._n 2._o &_o 3._o versus_fw-la finem_fw-la et_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la post_fw-la med_n council_n 1._o toletan_n can_v 8.5_o origen_n in_o numer_n hom_n 23._o august_n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 10._o cap._n 19_o &_o 20._o &_o passim_fw-la s._n clement_n the_o apostle_n scholar_n in_o apost_n constit_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 22._o fol._n 113._o edit_n antverp_n 1564._o council_n nicen._n 1._o can_v 14._o augustinus_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la cap._n 14._o &_o in_o enchirid._n cap._n 110._o etc._n etc._n tertul._n ad_fw-la scapul_n cap._n 2._o chrisost._n hom_n 27._o in_o act_n apost_n s._n clemens_n lib._n 8._o const._n apost_n cap._n 18._o fol._n 173._o &_o 174._o edit_n antverp_n 1564._o augustin_n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib_n 22._o cap._n 8._o cyprian_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la dom._n prope_fw-la initium_fw-la s._n ignatius_n the_o apostle_n scholar_n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la smirn._n s._n augustin_n lib._n 9_o confes._n cap._n 12._o &_o in_o enchirid._n cap._n 110._o &_o the_o verb._n apost_n serm_n 34._o say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o price_n be_v offer_v for_o his_o mother_n monica_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v relieve_v by_o the_o piety_n of_o their_o live_a friend_n when_o for_o they_o be_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mediator_n and_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v observe_v as_o deliver_v from_o our_o forefather_n that_o for_o those_o who_o be_v dead_a in_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n when_o in_o the_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n they_o be_v remember_v in_o their_o place_n prayer_n be_v make_v for_o they_o and_o beside_o this_o prayer_n it_o be_v remember_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o they_o also_o etc._n etc._n s._n ambrose_n make_v express_v mention_n of_o the_o mass_n lib._n 5._o epist_n 33._o ego_fw-la mansi_fw-la in_o munere_fw-la missam_fw-la facere_fw-la coepi_fw-la etc._n etc._n s._n leo_n epist_n 81._o ad_fw-la dioscor_fw-la necesse_fw-la autem_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la quaedam_fw-la populi_n pars_fw-la sua_fw-la devotione_fw-la privetur_fw-la si_fw-la unius_fw-la tantum_fw-la missae_fw-la more_fw-it servato_fw-la etc._n etc._n s._n augustin_n serm_n 91._o de_fw-fr temp._n in_o lectione_n quae_fw-la nobis_fw-la ad_fw-la missas_fw-la legenda_fw-la est_fw-la audituri_fw-la sumas_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v any_o christian_a be_v judge_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o safe_a and_o more_o rationa●l●_n to_o rely_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o it_o be_v ancient_a liturgy_n and_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o counsel_n
since_o the_o apostle_n then_o to_o take_v the_o bare_a word_n of_o cranmer_n a_o man_n who_o marry_v and_o unmarried_a k._n henry_n 8._o to_o as_o many_o woman_n as_o his_o majesty_n like_v or_o dislike_v dissolve_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n as_o often_o as_o the_o king_n seem_v to_o be_v weary_a of_o a_o wife_n a_o man_n who_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o his_o conveniency_n and_o incontinency_n and_o therefore_o do_v alter_v his_o faith_n as_o often_o as_o the_o time_n change_v and_o faction_n prevail_v and_o side_v with_o every_o rebel_n against_o his_o prince_n and_o be_v so_o carna_o give_v that_o even_o in_o henry_n 8._o day_n when_o priest_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o have_v wife_n he_o keep_v a_o wench_n so_o constant_o that_o he_o carry_v she_o about_o in_o his_o visitation_n let_v any_o christian_n i_o say_v be_v judge_n whether_o this_o man_n together_o with_o ochinus_n a_o jew_n bucer_n a_o atheist_n peter_n martyr_v so_o indifferent_a for_o any_o doctrine_n that_o he_o frame_v his_o faith_n at_o oxfor●_n according_a to_o the_o news_n from_o london_n and_o the_o parliament_n diurnal_o hooper_n rogers_n and_o latimer_n ambitious_a and_o discontent_a presbiterian_o b●le_a and_o coverdale_n two_o lewd_a and_o runigad_a friar_n whether_o i_o say_v these_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o this_o important_a point_n of_o salvation_n rather_o than_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o counsel_n who_o as_o have_v bin●_n say_v heretofore_o call_v the_o mass_n the_o visible_a sacrifice_n the_o true_a sacrifice_n the_o daily_a sacrifice_n the_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisadech_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o succeed_v all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n must_v the_o word_n of_o cranmer_n and_o his_o fellow_n be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o prudent_a man_n to_o believe_v as_o a_o article_n of_o religion_n keep_v that_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v as_o catholic_n by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o fable_n and_o themselves_o but_o a_o company_n of_o cheat_n the_o 32._o article_n be_v make_v by_o cranmer_n and_o his_o comrade_n to_o excuse_v their_o lewdness_n legitimat_fw-la their_o bastard_n and_o make_v their_o wench_n wife_n the_o second_o parliament_n of_o king_n edward_n 6._o have_v be_v so_o importune_v by_o apostata_fw-la priest_n and_o friar_n who_o have_v couple_v themselves_o with_o woman_n that_o their_o petition_n have_v be_v reject_v by_o the_o first_o parliament_n edward_n 6._o at_o lengh_n against_o the_o inclination_n and_o judgement_n of_o both_o house_n they_o obtain_v now_o by_o mere_a importunity_n a_o act_n to_o take_v away_o all_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n make_v against_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n statut_fw-la a_o 2._o edward_n 6._o cap._n 21._o but_o then_o they_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o very_a act_n that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o better_a for_o priest_n to_o live_v chaste_a sole_a and_o separate_a from_o the_o company_n of_o woman_n etc._n etc._n but_o that_o it_o be_v most_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o they_o will_v willing_o and_o of_o themselves_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v a_o perpetual_a chastity_n and_o abstinence_n from_o the_o use_n of_o woman_n and_o 1400._o year_n before_o that_o 12._o origen_n hom._n 23._o &_o lib._n 8._o contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la declare_v the_o doctrine_n even_o of_o the_o greeck_n church_n in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v certain_a the_o daily_a sacrifice_n be_v hinder_v in_o they_o who_o serve_v the_o necessity_n of_o marriage_n therefore_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o it_o appertain_v only_o to_o he_o to_o offer_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n who_o have_v vow_v himself_o to_o daily_a and_o perpetual_a chastity_n with_o whom●agree_v the_o other_o father_n s._n jerom_n in_o apologia_fw-la ad_fw-la pamachium_n cap._n 3._o desire_v they_o who_o like_v not_o of_o this_o doctrine_n not_o to_o be_v angry_a with_o he_o for_o tell_v they_o of_o it_o but_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o all_o bishop_n priests_z etc._n etc._n who_o know_v they_o can_v offer_v sacrifice_n if_o they_o use_v the_o act_n of_o marriage_n and_o say_v to_o vigilantius_n c._n 1._o who_o in_o this_o point_n also_o be_v a_o protestant_n and_o seem_v to_o confess_v his_o own_o frailty_n what_o do_v the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n who_o receive_v none_o but_o unmarried_a or_o continent_n priest_n or_o if_o they_o have_v wife_n they_o must_v cease_v to_o be_v husband_n and_o against_o jovinian_a cap_n 19_o &_o 14._o &_o ad_fw-la pamachium_n apol._n cap._n 8._o true_o thou_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o can_v be_v a_o bishop_n who_o in_o that_o state_n get_v child_n if_o he_o be_v convict_v thereof_o he_o will_v not_o be_v take_v for_o a_o husband_n but_o condemn_v as_o a_o adulterer_n but_o it_o seem_v out_o protestant_n bishop_n know_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n better_o than_o s._n hierom_n origen_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n both_o of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n since_o the_o king_n be_v most_o happy_a restauration_n they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o enjoy_v their_o wife_n and_o see_v the_o legitimacy_n of_o their_o child_n approve_v of_o but_o in_o the_o first_o parliament_n wherein_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o vote_n as_o i_o have_v be_v credible_o inform_v they_o attempt_v the_o house_n of_o lord_n shall_v declare_v their_o spiritual_a peerage_n do_v communicate_v the_o same_o honour_n and_o privilege_n to_o their_o lady_n that_o the_o law_n do_v give_v to_o baron_n wife_n but_o see_v the_o house_n smile_n at_o the_o motion_n and_o one_o of_o the_o first_o peer_n begin_v to_o rally_v according_a to_o his_o witty_a way_n upon_o a_o subject_n so_o proper_a for_o his_o genius_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n not_o so_o much_o concern_v in_o the_o suit_n because_o he_o be_v not_o marry_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n wave_v the_o pretention_n by_o say_v there_o have_v be_v a_o mistake_n in_o the_o motion_n in_o the_o two_o follow_a article_n they_o will_v fain_o prevent_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o schism_n among_o the_o protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o gain_v authority_n for_o the_o prelate_n thereof_o and_o reverence_n for_o their_o ceremony_n and_o censure_n but_o this_o design_n be_v frustrate_v by_o maintain_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o their_o own_o revolt_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o also_o the_o roman_n catholic_n fallibility_n and_o fall_v from_o the_o true_a apostolic_a religion_n without_o any_o far_a proof_n or_o evidence_n of_o so_o great_a a_o fault_n or_o frailty_n than_o the_o fancy_n and_o private_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n of_o some_o discontent_a and_o dissolute_a person_n pretend_v divine_a inspiration_n and_o illumination_n for_o the_o same_o and_o for_o their_o warrant_n to_o depose_v their_o spiritual_a superior_n and_o to_o reform_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n which_o reformation_n they_o also_o introduce_v in_o so_o tumultuous_a and_o seditious_a a_o manner_n that_o none_o who_o consider_v the_o principle_n practice_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o change_n can_v prudent_o commit_v his_o soul_n to_o the_o reformer_n charge_n or_o condescend_v to_o any_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n in_o their_o successor_n for_o beside_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o show_v for_o their_o presumption_n and_o intrusion_n but_o obscure_a text_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o themselves_o in_o a_o sense_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a visible_a ancient_a church_n that_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o continual_a and_o undeniable_a miracle_n they_o can_v give_v no_o assurance_n or_o probability_n of_o themselves_o being_n or_o continue_v in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n because_o if_o all_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n do_v err_v in_o doctrine_n how_o can_v their_o reformation_n pretend_v not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o misfortune_n or_o mistake_n and_o if_o the_o suppose_a frailty_n and_o fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o question_n and_o condemn_v its_o authority_n how_o can_v the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o any_o other_o protestant_n congregation_n exact_v from_o their_o sectary_n great_a respect_n and_o obedience_n than_o the_o first_o reformer_n give_v to_o their_o roman_a superior_n presbiterian_o independent_o quaker_n anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n pretend_v to_o as_o pure_a doctrine_n as_o divine_a a_o spirit_n and_o as_o much_o scripture_n against_o prelaticks_n as_o prelaticks_n do_v against_o papist_n and_o think_v there_o be_v as_o much_o reason_n for_o they_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o